Selected quad for the lemma: kingdom_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
kingdom_n king_n know_v word_n 1,874 5 3.7805 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A13296 A short compend of the historie of the first ten persecutions moued against Christians divided into III. centuries. Whereunto are added in the end of euery centurie treatises arising vpon occasion offered in the historie, clearely declaring the noveltie of popish religion, and that it neither flowed from the mouthes of Christs holy Apostles, neither was it confirmed by the blood of the holy martyrs who died in these ten persecutions. Simson, Patrick, 1556-1618. 1613-1616 (1616) STC 23601; ESTC S118088 593,472 787

There are 26 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

god_n see_v the_o daughter_n of_o man_n that_o they_o be_v fair_a and_o take_v wife_n unto_o themselves_o who_o they_o like_v gen_n 6._o ver_fw-la 2._o and_o on_o the_o other_o part_n when_o god_n will_v needs_o reveile_v his_o bless_a will_n by_o the_o write_a word_n then_o will_v we_o fly_v to_o un_fw-mi write_v tradition_n even_o to_o such_o as_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o write_a word_n and_o so_o man_n become_v like_a to_o a_o shadow_n when_o the_o sun_n shine_v in_o the_o east_n the_o shadow_n go_v towards_o the_o west_n &_o when_o the_o sun_n go_v down_o in_o the_o west_n the_o shadow_n incline_v to_o the_o east_n so_o do_v man_n obstinate_o repine_v against_o the_o will_n ofgod_n beside_o this_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v what_o great_a detriment_n have_v ensue_v upon_o those_o who_o leave_v the_o certainty_n of_o the_o write_a word_n lean_v upon_o the_o uncertainty_n of_o apostolic_a tradition_n beside_o papias_n b._n of_o hicrapolis_n who_o fall_v into_o the_o error_n of_o the_o chiliast_n clemens_n alexandrinus_n travail_v through_o many_o nation_n but_o take_v better_a heed_n to_o tradition_n then_o to_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o he_o fill_v his_o book_n call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d with_o most_o ungodly_a and_o foolish_a opinion_n as_o have_v be_v declare_v in_o the_o history_n of_o his_o life_n when_o we_o have_v say_v all_o that_o we_o can_v say_v that_o place_n of_o the_o second_o epistle_n to_o the_o the_o ssalonian_n cap._n 2._o ver_fw-la 15._o ring_n so_o loud_o in_o their_o ear_n that_o they_o can_v hear_v nothing_o that_o sound_v 15._o to_o the_o contraric_a wherefore_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v the_o illative_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v therefore_o which_o couple_v this_o verse_n with_o the_o precede_a text_n wherinto_o the_o apostle_n admonish_v the_o thessalonian_n of_o the_o come_n of_o the_o antichrist_n who_o come_n be_v after_o the_o work_n of_o satan_n in_o all_o power_n and_o sign_n and_o lie_a wonder_n ver_fw-la 9_o and_o his_o come_n shall_v be_v so_o strengthen_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o devil_n that_o he_o can_v be_v bear_v down_o but_o by_o the_o breath_n of_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n and_o brightness_n of_o his_o come_n now_o to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o poor_a handful_n of_o the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v save_v from_o the_o deceit_n of_o the_o antichrist_n he_o exhort_v they_o to_o adhere_v fast_o unto_o the_o apostolic_a doctrine_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v both_o by_o word_n and_o write_v scripture_n be_v abuse_v when_o it_o be_v wrest_v to_o another_o sense_n different_a from_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o writer_n but_o it_o be_v more_o abuse_v when_o it_o be_v draw_v to_o the_o clean_a contrary_a sense_n this_o place_n be_v set_v down_o to_o teach_v we_o to_o beware_v of_o the_o deceit_n of_o the_o antichrist_n by_o fast_o adhere_v to_o the_o apostolic_a doctrine_n but_o the_o papist_n abuse_v it_o to_o make_v we_o believe_v that_o their_o tradition_n repugnant_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n shall_v have_v alike_o authority_n with_o the_o writren_a word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o ready_a way_n to_o fall_v into_o the_o snare_n of_o the_o antichrist_n and_o not_o to_o be_v fir_v from_o his_o deceit_n scripture_n to_o conclude_v like_v as_o david_n do_v great_a honour_n to_o abishai_n when_o as_o in_o great_a matter_n of_o weight_n &_o importance_n he_o take_v he_o to_o be_v his_o follower_n to_o view_v the_o host_n of_o saul_n 1._o sam._n 26._o ver_fw-la 7._o even_o so_o god_n do_v great_a honour_n to_o his_o holy_a scripture_n when_o he_o use_v they_o as_o a_o instrument_n to_o do_v his_o great_a work_n by_o they_o christ_n reign_v as_o a_o king_n and_o he_o have_v make_v his_o word_n to_o be_v the_o sceptre_n of_o his_o kingdom_n psal._n 110._o christ_n be_v the_o shepherd_n of_o our_o soul_n &_o the_o word_n be_v his_o shepherd_n staff_n ps._n 23._o christ_n be_v the_o builder_n of_o his_o father_n house_n &_o the_o word_n be_v the_o measure_v line_n of_o the_o build_n christ_n be_v our_o saviour_n and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n to_o salvation_n toevery_n one_o that_o believe_v rom._n 1._o ver_fw-la 16._o see_v christ_n have_v do_v so_o great_a honour_n to_o the_o scripture_n what_o be_v we_o that_o we_o shall_v regard_v any_o thing_n speak_v in_o the_o contrary_a god_n grant_v we_o may_v conform_v ourselves_o to_o the_o will_n of_o christ_n amen_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n the_o heretic_n call_v gnostici_n disallow_v marriage_n &_o allow_v fornication_n and_o the_o heretic_n call_v encratite_n damn_v the_o eat_n of_o flesh_n and_o drink_n of_o wine_n as_o a_o sin_n and_o abhor_v the_o epistle_n of_o paul_n as_o have_v be_v declare_v in_o the_o history_n and_o the_o romanist_n themselves_o acknowledge_v that_o gnostici_n and_o encratitae_n be_v heretic_n and_o teach_v a_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n as_o likewise_o the_o manicheis_n of_o who_o we_o shall_v speak_v in_o the_o next_o centurie_n godwilling_a but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n concern_v prohibition_n of_o marriage_n and_o meat_n be_v different_a from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o gnostici_n encratitae_n and_o manichaei_n true_a it_o be_v there_o be_v some_o difference_n concern_v person_n time_n &_o some_o other_o circumstance_n for_o the_o heretic_n call_v gnostici_n damn_v marriage_n in_o all_o person_n the_o roman_a church_n damn_v it_o only_o in_o the_o person_n of_o priest_n &_o man_n have_v church_n order_n likewise_o eucratitae_n damn_v at_o all_o time_n the_o eat_n of_o flesh_n &_o drink_v of_o wine_n but_o the_o church_n of_o rhyme_n only_o prohibit_v the_o eat_n of_o flesh_n at_o certain_a season_n and_o upon_o certain_a day_n such_o as_o in_o lent_n and_o upon_o friday_n &c_n &c_n and_o that_o without_o prohition_n of_o drink_v of_o wine_n moderate_o three_o the_o manicheis_n count_v the_o good_a creature_n of_o god_n fl●…sh_n and_o wine_n to_o be_v in_o themselves_o pollute_v and_o unclean_a but_o the_o roman_a church_n think_v not_o so_o but_o for_o memory_n of_o the_o lord_n suffering_n for_o mortification_n of_o the_o flesh_n for_o preparation_n to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n and_o for_o testimony_n of_o obedience_n to_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n &_o successor_n of_o peter_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o abstain_v in_o manner_n abovewritten_v this_o difference_n be_v cast_v in_o to_o exeme_v the_o roman_a church_n from_o the_o imputation_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n yet_o be_v not_o the_o difference_n very_o great_a for_o the_o roman_a church_n forbid_v marriage_n &_o meat_n to_o some_o man_n at_o all_o time_n and_o to_o all_o man_n at_o sometime_o but_o consider_v again_o that_o difference_n of_o magis_fw-la and_o minus_fw-la that_o be_v of_o more_o and_o less_o do_v declare_v a_o communion_n rather_o than_o a_o contrariety_n as_o ireneus_n speak_v plu._n &_o minus_fw-la non_fw-la de_fw-la his_fw-la dicitur_fw-la quae_fw-la inverse_n communionem_fw-la non_fw-la habent_fw-la &_o sunt_fw-la contrariae_fw-la naturae_fw-la &_o pugnant_fw-la adversus_fw-la se_fw-la sed_fw-la de_fw-la his_fw-la quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la ejusdem_fw-la substantiae_fw-la &_o communicant_a secum_fw-la solum_fw-la autem_fw-la altitudine_fw-la &_o magnitudine_fw-la differunt_fw-la lib._n 4._o cap._n 22._o as_o a_o little_a water_n and_o a_o little_a fire_n differ_v from_o a_o great_a water_n and_o a_o great_a fire_n not_o in_o substance_n but_o in_o quantity_n even_o so_o the_o papist_n differ_v from_o the_o manicheis_n not_o in_o substance_n but_o in_o the_o discrepance_n of_o plus_fw-fr and_o minus_n the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o ground_n whereupon_o all_o this_o treatise_n be_v found_v now_o the_o spirit_n speak_v evid●…ntly_o that_o in_o the_o latter_a time_n some_o shall_v depart_v from_o the_o faith_n give_v beede_o unto_o spirit_n of_o error_n and_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n speak_v lie_n in_o hypocrisy_n have_v their_o conscience_n sear_v with_o a_o hot_a iron_n forbid_v to_o marry_v and_o command_v to_o abstain_v from_o meat_n which_o god_n have_v create_v to_o be_v receiu●…d_v with_o thing_n thanksgiving_n of_o they_o which_o believe_v and_o k●…ow_v the_o truth_n for_o every_o creature_n of_o god_n be_v good_a and_o nothing_o to_o be_v refus●…d_v if_o it_o be_v receive_v with_o thank●…sgiving_n 1._o tim._n 1._o 2._o 3_o 4._o in_o these_o word_n the_o popish_a church_n will_v grant_v that_o the_o mam._n het_n and_o other_o forename_a heretic_n be_v damn_v but_o they_o deny_v that_o these_o prediction_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n do_v damn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n anent_o forbid_v of_o marriage_n to_o some_o person_n and_o meat_n at_o some_o time_n as_o a_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n cry_v out_o that_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v
they_o crave_v that_o other_o shall_v make_v supplication_n to_o god_n for_o they_o but_o he_o who_o be_v mediator_n of_o intercession_n he_o pray_v for_o we_o and_o have_v no_o need_n that_o any_o man_n shall_v pray_v for_o he_o in_o like_a manner_n ch●…ysostome_n 5_o write_v upon_o these_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o there_o be_v one_o god_n and_o one_o mediator_n of_o god_n and_o man_n the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n plain_o affirm_v that_o the_o mediator_n of_o our_o intercession_n must_v be_v partaker_n both_o of_o the_o divine_a and_o humane_a nature_n and_o consequent_o there_o be_v no_o mediator_n of_o intercession_n except_o 7_o christ_n only_o who_o be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n in_o like_a manner_n speak_v of_o the_o canan●…tisb_n woman_n he_o say_v that_o she_o go_v not_o to_o peter_n nor_o to_o james_n nor_o to_o ●…ohn_n but_o she_o go_v direct_o to_o christ_n bring_v with_o her_o repentance_n as_o a_o advocate_n and_o be_v move_v with_o unspeakable_a admiration_n of_o the_o goodness_n of_o christ_n he_o say_v o_o admirandare_n sursum_fw-la tremor_n &_o deorsum_fw-la fiducia_fw-la miserere_fw-la 16_o mei_fw-la non_fw-la opus_fw-la habeo_fw-la mediatore_fw-la that_o be_v o_o admirable_a thing_n there_o be_v tremble_v above_o and_o confidence_n below_o have_v mercy_n upon_o i_o i_o have_v no_o need_n of_o a_o mediator_n to_o wit_n betwixt_o christ_n and_o i_o thus_o we_o see_v that_o when_o ancient_a father_n speak_v of_o a_o mediator_n of_o intercession_n they_o speak_v of_o a_o mediator_n betwixt_o god_n and_o we_o and_o not_o betwixt_o christ_n and_o us._n but_o now_o let_v we_o take_v up_o out_o of_o ground_n of_o holy_a scripture_n a_o true_a description_n of_o the_o mediator_n of_o intercession_n out_o of_o two_o principal_a place_n of_o scripture_n the_o description_n shall_v be_v ground_v in_o the_o gospel_n of_o matthew_n it_o be_v say_v this_o be_v my_o wellbeloved_n son_n in_o who_o i_o be_o well_o please_v and_o in_o the_o epistle_n of_o peter_n we_o be_v 5_o warn_v to_o offer_v up_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n acceptable_a to_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ._n of_o these_o two_o place_n of_o scripture_n i_o gather_v a_o description_n of_o a_o mediator_n of_o intercession_n in_o this_o manner_n he_o for_o who_o sake_n only_o our_o person_n be_v in_o favour_n with_o god_n and_o for_o who_o merit_n only_o our_o prayer_n be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n he_o be_v the_o only_a mediator_n of_o our_o intercession_n but_o so_o it_o be_v that_o in_o christ_n only_a god_n be_v please_v with_o our_o person_n and_o for_o his_o sake_n only_a god_n accept_v our_o prayer_n ergo_fw-la christ_n be_v the_o only_a mediator_n of_o our_o intercession_n the_o similitude_n that_o be_v use_v by_o papist_n in_o stead_n of_o a_o argument_n be_v to_o be_v discuss_v like_a as_o subject_n shall_v not_o step_v rude_o to_o the_o king_n but_o by_o mediate_a person_n who_o be_v in_o favour_n and_o credit_n present_v their_o suit_n unto_o his_o highness_n eu●…n_o so_o say_v they_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o present_v our_o prayer_n to_o christ_n at_o the_o first_o instant_n without_o the_o intercession_n of_o saint_n to_o this_o similitude_n origen_n himself_o albeit_o the_o first_o inventor_n of_o the_o seminary_n of_o this_o error_n he_o answer_v by_o another_o similitude_n 〈◊〉_d that_o like_o as_o the_o shadow_n do_v follow_v the_o body_n in_o most_o absolute_a manner_n so_o that_o if_o the_o body_n be_v move_v the_o shadow_n also_o move_v and_o if_o the_o body_n rest_n the_o shadow_n also_o rest_v even_o so_o if_o 2_o man_n can_v be_v in_o favour_n with_o the_o eternal_a god_n then_o shall_v he_o also_o be_v in_o friendship_n with_o all_o the_o creature_n of_o god_n and_o this_o agree_v well_o with_o the_o word_n of_o holy_a scripture_n that_o the_o stone_n in_o the_o field_n shall_v be_v in_o league_n with_o we_o and_o the_o beast_n of_o the_o field_n shall_v be_v at_o peace_n 23_o with_o we_o to_o wit_n when_o we_o be_v reconcile_v to_o our_o god._n to_o this_o same_o similitude_n both_o use_v of_o old_a by_o some_o and_o reject_v by_o the_o learned_a s._n ambrose_n give_v this_o answer_n write_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o p●…l_n they_o serve_v the_o creature_n forsake_v the_o creator_n who_o be_v 25_o bless_v for_o ever_o upon_o these_o word_n he_o write_v that_o man_n who_o have_v neglect_v pray_v to_o god_n they_o defend_v themselves_o with_o a_o miserable_a excuse_n say_v that_o by_o saint_n they_o may_v have_v access_n to_o god_n like_v as_o by_o noble_a courteour_n access_n unto_o the_o king_n be_v purchase_v but_o go_v toe_n say_v he_o be_v any_o man_n so_o foolish_a 〈◊〉_d or_o so_o unmindful_a of_o his_o own_o safety_n that_o he_o dare_v give_v unto_o the_o foresaid_a noble_a courteour_n that_o honour_n which_o be_v due_a to_o the_o king_n for_o if_o any_o man_n be_v find_v traffic_v about_o such_o business_n he_o will_v be_v just_o condemn_v of_o treason_n yet_o these_o man_n count_v they_o not_o guilty_a who_o give_v the_o honour_n due_a to_o god_n u●…to_o a_o creature_n and_o forsake_v god_n they_o worship_v their_o own_o fellow-seruante_n as_o if_o there_o be_v any_o great_a service_n that_o can_v be_v exhibit_v to_o god_n to_o wit_n than_o invocation_n of_o his_o bless_a name_n for_o this_o cause_n say_v he_o man_n procure_v access_n to_o the_o king_n by_o noble_n and_o tribune_n because_o the_o king_n be_v but_o a_o man_n and_o know_v not_o to_o who_o he_o shall_v concredite_fw-la the_o affair_n of_o the_o kingdom_n but_o to_o purchase_v the_o favour_n of_o god_n to_o who_o nothing_o be_v unknown_a because_o he_o know_v the_o deserving_n of_o all_o man_n there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o suffragantes_fw-la but_o of_o a_o devote_v anima_fw-la mind_n and_o in_o his_o book_n write_v of_o isaac_n and_o the_o soul_n he_o write_v of_o christ_n very_o holy_o and_o according_a to_o scripture_n christ_n be_v o●…r_a mouth_n by_o who_o we_o talk_v with_o the_o father_n he_o be_v our_o eye_n by_o who_o we_o see_v the_o father_n he_o be_v our_o right_a hand_n by_o who_o we_o offer_v ourselves_o unto_o the_o father_n who_o if_o he_o intercide_v not_o for_o we_o neither_o we_o nor_o the_o saint_n have_v any_o thing_n to_o do_v with_o god._n albeit_o it_o may_v be_v sufficient_o prou●…d_v that_o even_o ambrose_n himself_o be_v somewhat_o entangle_v with_o the_o error_n universal_o overspread_v among_o the_o common_a people_n for_o they_o be_v so_o fond_a upon_o invocation_n of_o saint_n that_o learned_a preacher_n yield_v somewhat_o to_o the_o madness_n of_o a_o ●…uill_n dispose_v people_n as_o aaron_n do_v to_o the_o carnal_a i●…wes_n when_o they_o worship_v 32_o the_o golden_a calf_n nevertheless_o any_o man_n who_o read_v the_o forementioned_a place_n of_o ambrose_n may_v perceive_v that_o in_o heart_n and_o mind_n he_o dislike_v the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n the_o more_o particular_o that_o we_o descend_v into_o this_o argument●…_n the_o truth_n shall_v be_v the_o more_o clear_o manifest_v let_v we_o therefore_o search_v out_o whether_o or_o no_o it_o be_v count_v lawful_a of_o old_a to_o pray_v to_o the_o angel_n to_o worship_v the_o virgin_n marie_n and_o to_o in●…ocate_v the_o saint_n in_o holy_a scripture_n we_o find_v that_o under_o colour_n of_o humility_n some_o do_v worship_v the_o angel_n and_o pray_v unto_o they_o but_o the_o holy_a apostle_n paul_n who_o be_v teach_v immediate_o by_o christ_n call_v this_o form_n of_o devotion_n rashness_n and_o the_o 18_o conceit_n of_o a_o heart_n puff_v up_o with_o a_o fleshly_a mind_n there_o be_v no_o pride_n comparable_a to_o the_o pride_n of_o a_o fool_n he_o will_v speak_v of_o thing_n he_o never_o see_v nor_o hear_v and_o of_o thing_n whereof_o he_o can_v render_v no_o reason_n the_o angel_n who_o reveal_v great_a mystery_n 9_o to_o the_o apostle_n john_n will_v not_o be_v content_a to_o be_v worship_v by_o he_o but_o rebuke_v he_o at_o two_o diverse_a time_n for_o presume_v to_o worship_v he_o &_o say_v at_o both_o time_n he_o shall_v worship_v god._n and_o the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n damn_v the_o worship_v of_o angel_n as_o 10_o idolatry_n and_o a_o forsake_v of_o christ_n the_o angel_n who_o bless_a jaakob_n be_v not_o one_o of_o the_o minister_a spirit_n but_o the_o great_a angel_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o god_n even_o christ_n jesus_n to_o who_o all_o knee_n shall_v be_v bow_v concern_v the_o adoration_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n the_o mother_n of_o our_o lord_n it_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o fabulous_a narrat●…on_n of_o her_o assumption_n write_v by_o nicephorus_n whereunto_o the_o less_o credit_n 14_o be_v to_o be_v give_v because_o in_o it_o the_o glory_n only_o due_a to_o christ_n be_v give_v to_o the_o virgin_n marie_n namely_o
these_o be_v miserable_o infect_v with_o the_o superstition_n of_o their_o time_n such_o as_o the_o opinion_n of_o purgatory_n invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o worship_v of_o image_n and_o prohibition_n of_o marriage_n bonifacius_n be_v a_o man_n bear_v in_o england_n in_o a_o place_n near_o adjoin_v to_o excester_n he_o be_v familiar_o acquaint_v with_o five_o pope_n to_o wit_n with_o pope_n constantinus_n the_o first_o gregorius_n the_o second_o gregorius_n the_o third_o zacharias_n the_o first_o and_o stepanus_fw-la the_o second_o and_o by_o they_o he_o be_v advance_v to_o many_o honour_n first_o to_o be_v the_o pope_n legate_n in_o england_n germany_n and_o france_n and_o afterwards_o to_o be_v archbishop_n of_o mentz_n all_o his_o study_n and_o travel_v tend_v to_o this_o to_o bring_v the_o people_n of_o england_n germany_n and_o france_n to_o the_o subjection_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n and_o to_o a_o conformity_n to_o the_o superstition_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o the_o name_n and_o at_o the_o commandment_n of_o pope_n zacharias_n he_o disauthorise_v childericus_fw-la king_n of_o france_n thrust_v he_o into_o a_o monastery_n and_o anoint_a pipinus_fw-la the_o son_n of_o carolus_n martellus_n to_o be_v king_n of_o france_n so_o zealous_a be_v he_o to_o perform_v all_o the_o desire_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n by_o who_o also_o his_o name_n be_v change_v for_o he_o be_v first_o name_v vinofridus_fw-la but_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o delit_v in_o his_o service_n call_v he_o bonifacius_n after_o he_o have_v serve_v the_o roman_a bishop_n in_o slavish_a subjection_n 36._o year_n he_o be_v slay_v by_o pagan_n because_o he_o have_v anoint_v pipinus_fw-la king_n of_o france_n and_o for_o hope_v they_o have_v to_o enrich_v themselves_o by_o his_o coffer_n in_o the_o which_o when_o they_o have_v open_v they_o they_o find_v nothing_o except_o book_n and_o relic_n of_o saint_n whereof_o they_o make_v no_o account_n and_o his_o body_n be_v bury_v in_o the_o monastery_n of_o fulda_n damascene_fw-la a_o superstitious_a monk_n the_o disciple_n of_o cosinas_fw-la live_v damascenus_n under_o the_o emperor_n leo_n and_o constantinus_n copronymus_n he_o be_v a_o long_a time_n in_o company_n of_o the_o saracene_n and_o with_o the_o prince_n of_o saracene_n he_o go_v to_o the_o sepulchre_n of_o mahomet_n and_o like_v unto_o a_o timorous_a body_n worship_v the_o bone_n of_o mahomet_n fear_v to_o 10_o have_v be_v put_v to_o death_n if_o he_o have_v not_o do_v such_o homage_n he_o be_v a_o patron_n of_o worship_v of_o image_n and_o be_v excommunicate_v in_o the_o general_n council_n assemble_v by_o constantinus_n copronymus_n it_o be_v write_v by_o ihonne_v patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n in_o the_o history_n of_o damascen_n life_n that_o the_o prince_n of_o saracene_n be_v move_v to_o indignation_n against_o he_o by_o a_o deceitful_a letter_n send_v from_o the_o emperor_n leo_n isaurus_n in_o the_o which_o damascene_fw-la be_v charge_v as_o a_o man_n willing_a to_o have_v betray_v the_o town_n of_o damascus_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o emperor_n leo._n upon_o this_o occasion_n say_v john_n patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o prince_n of_o saracene_n cut_v off_o the_o hand_n of_o damascene_fw-la and_o on_o the_o other_o part_n damascene_fw-la by_o humble_a kneel_v before_o the_o image_n of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n be_v miraculous_o cure_v and_o restore_v again_o to_o the_o power_n of_o his_o hand_n but_o this_o be_v like_a to_o the_o rest_n of_o popish_a fable_n and_o lie_v for_o damascene_fw-la write_v many_o notable_a fable_n for_o confirmation_n of_o adoration_n of_o image_n and_o incase_o a_o miracle_n have_v be_v wrought_v in_o his_o own_o person_n by_o prostrate_v himself_o before_o a_o image_n damaescene_n have_v no_o manner_n of_o way_n over-passed_n with_o silence_n the_o memorial_n thereof_o but_o we_o have_v to_o do_v with_o adversary_n who_o be_v not_o ashamed_a of_o lie_n damascene_fw-la be_v a_o diligent_a reader_n of_o the_o book_n of_o ancient_a father_n as_o appear_v by_o his_o four_o book_n de_fw-fr orthodoxa_fw-la fide_fw-la but_o not_o so_o diligent_a a_o reader_n of_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o manifold_a error_n his_o history_n of_o josophat_n king_n of_o india_n be_v know_v to_o be_v a_o monkish_a fable_n paulus_n diaconus_fw-la of_o the_o kindred_n of_o the_o lombarde_n become_v a_o deacon_n in_o aquileia_n he_o be_v carry_v captive_a into_o france_n in_o the_o diaconus_fw-la day_n of_o charles_n the_o great_a who_o besiege_v papia_n banish_v desiderius_n and_o make_v a_o end_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o lombarde_n afterward_o he_o be_v accuse_v of_o treason_n and_o conspiracy_n against_o charles_n king_n of_o france_n his_o malicious_a and_o hateful_a accuser_n be_v bend_v to_o have_v have_v his_o hand_n cut_v off_o or_o his_o eye_n put_v out_o but_o k._n charles_n pity_v he_o for_o his_o learning_n be_v content_a that_o he_o shall_v be_v banish_v to_o the_o i_o will_v of_o diomedes_n from_o thence_o he_o flee_v and_o come_v to_o beneventum_n where_o arachis_n be_v dwell_v who_o have_v marry_v adelperga_n the_o daughter_n of_o desiderius_n in_o his_o palace_n it_o be_v think_v he_o write_v his_o six_o book_n de_fw-fr rebus_fw-la gestis_fw-la longobardarum_fw-la after_o the_o death_n of_o arachis_n he_o come_v to_o the_o monastery_n call_v cassinense_n where_o he_o end_v his_o life_n beda_n a_o man_n bear_v and_o bring_v up_o in_o england_n be_v call_v venerable_a and_o be_v in_o great_a account_n in_o his_o time_n only_o he_o be_v beda_n miserable_o entangle_v with_o deceitful_a antichristian_a error_n universal_o overspr_v in_o his_o day_n such_o as_o invocation_n of_o saint_n worship_v of_o relic_n opinion_n of_o purgatory_n and_o of_o support_n that_o may_v be_v have_v by_o say_v of_o mass_n in_o writing_n reading_z and_o pray_v he_o be_v a_o man_n of_o incessant_a pain_n nothing_o be_v find_v in_o he_o more_o commendable_a than_o his_o patient_a suffering_n of_o the_o agony_n immediate_o precede_v his_o dissolution_n with_o a_o desire_n to_o be_v god_n dissolve_v and_o to_o be_v with_o christ._n albertus_n gallus_n a_o bishop_n in_o some_o part_n of_o france_n a_o learned_a and_o godly_a man_n oppone_v himself_o mighty_o to_o bonifacius_n the_o foote-groome_n of_o the_o roman_a antichrist_n with_o who_o concur_v two_o jearned_a man_n bear_v in_o scotland_n name_v clemens_n presbyter_n and_o samson_n and_o offer_v to_o prove_v both_o by_o word_n and_o writing_n that_o bonifacius_n be_v a_o author_n of_o lie_n a_o troubler_n of_o the_o peace_n of_o christian_n and_o a_o corrupter_n and_o deceiver_n of_o the_o people_n but_o pope_n zacharias_fw-la excommunicate_v they_o before_o they_o be_v hear_v in_o a_o lawful_a assembly_n and_o give_v power_n to_o his_o foote-groome_n bonifacius_n 10_o to_o depose_v they_o &_o procure_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o king_n of_o france_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v casten_z into_o prison_n and_o bind_v with_o band_n as_o schismatics_n false_a teacher_n and_o sacrilegious_a man_n such_o reward_n man_n receive_v who_o be_v witness_n to_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n and_o reprehend_v any_o corruption_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o like_a manner_n joannes_n mailrosius_n and_o claudius_n clemens_n learned_a man_n of_o scotland_n send_v by_o king_n acha●…us_n to_o charles_n king_n of_o france_n and_o the_o first_o professor_n of_o learning_n in_o the_o academy_n found_v by_o charles_n the_o great_a in_o parise_n these_o two_o likewise_o be_v dislike_v of_o the_o roman_a church_n because_o they_o can_v not_o assent_v to_o all_o the_o superstition_n of_o that_o church_n in_o this_o age_n so_o miserable_o deform_v chap._n iii_o of_o heretic_n many_o be_v count_v heretic_n in_o this_o age_n because_o they_o worship_v god_n sincere_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o his_o own_o bless_a word_n and_o will_v not_o give_v consent_n to_o the_o fond_a error_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o some_o be_v count_v heretic_n just_o and_o without_o all_o controversy_n as_o foeliciani_fw-la namely_o they_o who_o call_v christ_n in_o his_o humane_a nature_n the_o adoptive_a son_n of_o god_n this_o wicked_a heresy_n repugn_v unto_o the_o celestial_a oracle_n which_o the_o three_o apostle_n hear_v in_o the_o holy_a mountain_n this_o be_v my_o well-beloved_a son_n in_o who_o i_o be_o well_o please_v 1_o we_o be_v adopt_v in_o christ_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o christ_n even_o in_o his_o manly_a nature_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o the_o excellent_a prerogative_n of_o personal_a union_n with_o the_o divine_a nature_n it_o be_v not_o certain_o know_v whether_o elipandus_n bishop_n of_o hispalis_n or_o another_o name_v foelix_n with_o who_o some_o affirm_v that_o elipandus_n consult_v about_o this_o damnable_a opinion_n be_v the_o author_n of_o this_o damnable_a heresy_n chap._n four_o of_o counsel_n in_o the_o
my_o covenant_n with_o you_o say_v the_o lord_n my_o spirit_n which_o be_v upon_o thou_o and_o my_o word_n which_o i_o have_v put_v in_o thy_o mouth_n shall_v not_o depart_v out_o of_o thy_o mouth_n nor_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o thy_o seed_n say_v the_o lord_n from_o henceforth_o and_o for_o ever_o isa._n 59_o ver_fw-la 21_o but_o the_o anabaptist_n in_o our_o day_n brag_v of_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o revelation_n notwithstanding_o agree_v not_o with_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o their_o revelation_n be_v but_o fantasy_n and_o toy_n of_o brainsick_a man_n this_o write_a word_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v read_v in_o the_o book_n of_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n of_o who_o christ_n say_v search_v the_o apostle_n scripture_n for_o they_o bear_v testimony_n of_o i_o joh._n 5._o and_o in_o the_o book_n write_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n who_o christ_n command_v to_o tarry_v at_o jerusalem_n until_o they_o be_v endue_v with_o power_n from_o above_o act_n 1._o ver_fw-la 8._o this_o power_n wherewith_o they_o be_v endue_v from_o above_o be_v double_a first_o a_o power_n to_o know_v the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n of_o god_n second_o power_n to_o utter_v bold_o and_o courageous_o in_o all_o language_n and_o to_o all_o nation_n the_o truth_n which_o they_o know_v this_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d distinguish_v the_o write_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n from_o all_o other_o write_n as_o theodoretus_n prudent_o have_v note_v the_o principio_fw-la serm._n 2._o the_o will_n of_o god_n say_v he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v seek_v in_o the_o book_n of_o plato_n who_o like_v as_o he_o know_v little_a in_o matter_n concern_v god_n so_o likewise_o he_o be_v timorous_a and_o dare_v not_o utter_v unto_o the_o world_n bold_o that_o little_a sponke_n of_o knowledge_n which_o he_o have_v he_o know_v there_o be_v only_o one_o god_n but_o in_o his_o letter_n write_v to_o dionysius_n if_o they_o be_v serious_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o letter_n th●…t_o be_v o●…e_v god_n but_o if_o the_o letter_n be_v not_o serious_a nor_o dite_v from_o the_o ●…ound_n of_o his_o heart_n than_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o letter_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v plurality_n of_o god_n who_o can_v give_v undoubted_a credit_n in_o matter_n pertain_v to_o god_n to_o such_o man_n as_o know_v but_o a_o little_a and_o the_o little_a thing_n that_o they_o know_v they_o dare_v not_o presume_v to_o tell_v it_o to_o other_o but_o the_o apostle_n be_v endue_v with_o strength_n from_o above_o they_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n in_o all_o truth_n john_n 16._o &_o they_o be_v not_o dash_v with_o fear_n of_o the_o countenance_n of_o man_n act_n 4._o but_o courageous_o preach_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n to_o the_o great_a admiration_n of_o their_o hateful_a adversary_n the_o word_n of_o god_n write_v by_o moses_n be_v so_o perfect_o write_v moses_n that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o add_v any_o thing_n unto_o it_o nor_o to_o pair_n any_o thing_n from_o it_o deut._n 4._o 12._o neither_o do_v the_o prophet_n or_o apostle_n add_v any_o thing_n unto_o the_o write_n of_o moses_n but_o they_o be_v faithful_a interpreter_n of_o moses_n book_n and_o utter_v that_o same_o thing_n more_o clear_o which_o be_v somewhat_o dark_o shadow_v into_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o law_n for_o like_a similitude_n as_o a_o merchant_n man_n who_o have_v fine_a cloth_n roll_v up_o in_o his_o shop_n if_o he_o shall_v lay_v it_o out_o in_o breadth_n and_o length_n upon_o a_o table_n it_o remain_v the_o self_n same_o cloth_n it_o be_v before_o but_o it_o be_v better_a see_v and_o know_v than_o it_o be_v before_o even_o so_o the_o apostle_n have_v utter_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n more_o clear_o than_o moses_n do_v but_o they_o have_v say_v no_o more_o anent_o the_o salvation_n of_o man_n than_o moses_n say_v before_o they_o this_o pure_a and_o perfect_a word_n of_o god_n shall_v not_o be_v mix_v tradition_n with_o humane_a tradition_n for_o by_o this_o mixture_n three_o injury_n be_v do_v to_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n first_o by_o this_o mean_a the_o reverence_n due_a unto_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n be_v impair_v and_o diminish_v second_o tradition_n by_o time_n be_v equal_v unto_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n and_o three_o tradition_n be_v prefer_v unto_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n and_o this_o be_v the_o last_o period_n whereunto_o the_o reverence_n of_o human_a tradition_n tend_v to_o make_v the_o writ●…n_a commandment_n of_o god_n of_o none_o effect_v by_o their_o tradition_n as_o christ_n clear_o testify_v mat._n 15_o ver_fw-la 6._o humane_a tradition_n be_v the_o less_o to_o be_v regard_v of_o all_o true_a heart_a christian_n to_o the_o end_n the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n may_v have_v the_o own_o due_a honour_n and_o reverence_n many_o false_a imputation_n against_o sacred_a scripture_n be_v forge_v scripture_n by_o papist_n to_o transport_v the_o heart_n of_o people_n from_o the_o perfect_a reverence_n of_o scripture_n call_v it_o imperfite_a &_o unsufficient_a and_o that_o it_o be_v obscure_a and_o that_o it_o be_v perilous_a to_o laicke_n people_n to_o read_v it_o lest_o they_o fall_v into_o error_n the_o first_o accusation_n of_o scripture_n be_v the_o unsufficiencie_n of_o it_o the_o bishop_n of_o enereux_fw-fr that_o blasphemous_a man_n be_v bold_a to_o write_v vnsufficiencie_n a_o book_n of_o the_o unsufficiencie_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o great_a argument_n he_o use_v if_o it_o be_v grant_v yet_o prove_v it_o not_o his_o purpose_n for_o he_o think_v that_o we_o have_v not_o sufficient_o by_o scripture_n convict_v the_o anabaptist_n who_o deny_v that_o child_n shall_v be_v baptize_v till_o they_o be_v of_o perfect_a year_n to_o give_v a_o confession_n of_o their_o own_o faith_n we_o suppone_v that_o all_o this_o be_v true_a yet_o it_o prove_v not_o unsufficiencie_n in_o scripture_n but_o rather_o insufficiency_n in_o we_o to_o who_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o book_n of_o god_n be_v not_o sufficient_o know_v there_o be_v a_o place_n of_o scripture_n exod_n 3._o i_o be_o the_o god_n of_o abraham_n isaac_n and_o jacob._n in_o this_o place_n i_o say_v be_v a_o argument_n secret_o latent_fw-la and_o proon_v the_o resurrection_n as_o christ_n clear_o declare_v dispute_v against_o the_o sadducee_n mat._n 22_o ver_fw-la 31._o 32._o yet_o no_o man_n before_o the_o manifestation_n of_o christ_n himself_o ever_o perceive_v that_o this_o argument_n be_v lurk_v in_o these_o word_n shall_v it_o be_v say_v this_o argument_n be_v not_o in_o scripture_n because_o it_o be_v not_o perceive_v by_o weak_a man_n to_o be_v in_o scripture_n true_o it_o be_v good_a for_o this_o bishop_n to_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o the_o judge_n that_o be_v in_o this_o isle_n of_o britain_n when_o a_o act_n of_o parliament_n be_v make_v and_o ratify_v the_o judge_n of_o our_o country_n decern_v all_o cause_n according_a to_o the_o act_n but_o give_v not_o out_o rash_a sentence_n against_o the_o act_n but_o when_o the_o covenant_n of_o god_n be_v make_v and_o ratify_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v better_a to_o judge_v according_a to_o it_o then_o to_o give_v out_o rash_a sentence_n against_o it_o let_v we_o consider_v what_o be_v write_v of_o the_o three_o book_n that_o shall_v be_v open_v at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o whereby_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v judge_v one_o of_o the_o three_o book_n be_v express_o nominat_fw-la to_o wit_n the_o book_n of_o life_n apocal_a chap._n 20._o ver_fw-la 10_o the_o other_o two_o no_o man_n can_v deny_v to_o be_v the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o book_n of_o the_o conscience_n because_o the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n declare_v all_o that_o we_o shall_v have_v do_v and_o the_o book_n of_o the_o conscience_n be_v open_v manifest_v all_o that_o we_o have_v do_v whereupon_o the_o righteous_a judge_n of_o the_o world_n ground_v a_o just_a sentence_n of_o condemnation_n against_o ungodly_a man_n in_o this_o manner_n the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n manifest_v what_o you_o shall_v have_v do_v the_o book_n of_o your_o own_o conscience_n manifest_v that_o you_o have_v do_v the_o contrary_a and_o moreover_o also_o your_o name_n be_v not_o find_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n therefore_o depart_v from_o i_o into_o the_o fire_n prepare_v for_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n now_o i_o demand_v of_o papist_n concern_v these_o three_o book_n that_o shall_v be_v open_v be_v any_o of_o they_o imperfite_a be_v there_o any_o elect_a person_n who_o name_n be_v not_o write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o
to_o be_v count_v of_o according_a to_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o promise_v annex_v to_o the_o succession_n david_n as_o namely_o the_o succession_n of_o david_n of_o who_o god_n say_v his_o seed_n also_o will_v i_o make_v to_o endure_v for_o ever_o &_o his_o throne_n as_o the_o day_n of_o heaven_n psal._n 89._o 29_o &_o again_o ver_fw-la 35._o 36._o i_o have_v swear_v once_o by_o my_o holiness_n that_o i_o will_v not_o fail_v david_n say_v his_o seed_n shall_v endure_v for_o ever_o and_o his_o throne_n shall_v be_v as_o the_o sun_n before_o i_o here_o be_v ample_a promise_n to_o david_n &_o his_o succession_n confirm_v by_o the_o lord_n oath_n &_o by_o the_o sun_n &_o moon_n as_o faithful_a witness_n in_o heaven_n and_o that_o which_o be_v more_o than_o all_o the_o rest_n this_o succession_n of_o david_n be_v a_o line_n lead_v to_o the_o great_a king_n christ_n jesus_n who_o shall_v sit_v in_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o father_n david_n &_o of_o his_o kingdom_n there_o shall_v be_v none_o end_n luc._n 1._o for_o all_o these_o cause_v the_o succession_n of_o david_n be_v great_o regard_v yet_o it_o be_v to_o be_v mark_v that_o all_o the_o promise_n oath_n testimony_n &_o honour_n do_v not_o carry_v with_o they_o a_o necessity_n that_o every_o successor_n of_o david_n shall_v be_v in_o faith_n and_o religion_n like_v unto_o david_n but_o rather_o god_n foresee_v the_o contrary_a faith_n if_o his_o ch●…ldren_n forsake_v my_o law_n and_o walk_v not_o in_o my_o judgement_n if_o they_o break_v my_o statute_n and_o keep_v not_o my_o ordinance_n then_o w●…ll_v i_o visit_v their_o transgression_n with_o the_o rod_n and_o their_o iniquitte_v with_o stroke_n ibid._n ver_fw-la 30._o 31._o 32._o i_o suppone_v that_o no_o succession_n ever_o have_v more_o glorious_a and_o ample_a promise_n then_o the_o succession_n of_o david_n yet_o these_o promise_n infer_v no_o necessity_n that_o every_o king_n sit_v on_o the_o throne_n of_o david_n shall_v be_v heir_n also_o of_o the_o religion_n and_o faith_n of_o david_n as_o well_o as_o of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o therefore_o to_o infer_v upon_o this_o ground_n that_o ample_a promise_n be_v make_v to_o the_o apostle_n &_o their_o successor_n that_o every_o one_o who_o succeed_v to_o the_o apostolic_a chair_n shall_v keep_v the_o true_a faith_n of_o the_o apostle_n it_o be_v but_o a_o foolish_a and_o impertinent_a conclusion_n if_o any_o man_n shall_v reply_v that_o this_o be_v a_o succession_n of_o civil_a governor_n but_o the_o question_n now_o controvert_v be_v anent_o succession_n of_o bishop_n and_o man_n in_o a_o spiritual_a call_n true_a it_o be_v that_o david_n successor_n succeed_v to_o a_o civil_a government_n yet_o see_v this_o succession_n be_v ratify_v by_o the_o oath_n of_o god_n and_o lead_v also_o to_o christ_n who_o be_v sovereign_a lord_n both_o of_o soul_n and_o body_n whatsoever_o privilege_n of_o stand_v in_o a_o good_a estate_n can_v be_v allege_v in_o any_o succession_n the_o pattern_n of_o it_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o succession_n of_o david_n but_o this_o privilege_n that_o the_o successor_n of_o david_n can_v err_v in_o the_o true_a faith_n be_v not_o find_v no_o not_o in_o the_o great_a succession_n of_o david_n now_o to_o come_v to_o ecclesiastical_a succession_n the_o priesthood_n of_o aaron_n be_v institute_v by_o god_n numb_a 17._o ver_fw-la 5._o it_o be_v confirm_v aaron_n by_o the_o miracle_n of_o the_o bud_a rod_n ibid._n ver_fw-la 23._o the_o usarper_n of_o aaron_n office_n without_o a_o call_n be_v also_o miraculous_o destroy_v by_o fire_n that_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n numb_a 16._o other_o be_v debar_v from_o it_o even_o in_o the_o day_n of_o nehemiah_n nehem._n 7._o ver_n 64._o this_o succession_n of_o aaron_n be_v personal_a the_o son_n succeed_v to_o the_o father_n in_o the_o priesthood_n except_o some_o mutilation_n of_o a_o member_n or_o impotency_n do_v hinder_v or_o any_o such_o like_a cause_n after_z aaron_n eleazar_n and_o his_o son_n phineas_n &_o abishva_n phineas_n son_n and_o bukki_n &_o huzzi_n zerachia_n meraioth_n amaria_n achitub_n zadok_n ahimaaz_n 1._o chron._n 6._o ver_fw-la 50._o 51._o 52._o 53._o many_o other_o after_o they_o be_v priest_n of_o the_o stock_n of_o aaron_n yet_o do_v not_o all_o keep_v fast_o the_o faith_n and_o religion_n of_o aaron_n yea_o some_o priest_n of_o aaron_n stock_n be_v notable_a idolater_n &_o men-pleasers_a such_o as_o vriah_n in_o the_o day_n of_o ahaz_n king_n of_o juda_n who_o set_v up_o a_o altar_n at_o the_o king_n commandment_n according_a to_o the_o similitude_n of_o the_o altar_n of_o damascus_n and_o offer_v sacrifice_n thereon_o 2._o reg._n 16._o anent_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o prophet_n even_o when_o one_o good_a man_n succeed_v to_o another_o good_a man_n the_o history_n of_o prophet_n scripture_n clear_o declare_v that_o man_n point_v out_o by_o god_n himself_o successor_n to_o a_o office_n yet_o by_o this_o be_v they_o not_o make_v succ●…ssours_n to_o their_o gift_n for_o elizeus_n be_v point_v out_o by_o god_n as_o successor_n to_o elias_n in_o his_o prophetical_a office_n 1._o reg._n 19_o ver_fw-la 16._o yet_o by_o this_o be_v he_o not_o successor_n to_o his_o gift_n as_o elizeus_n petition_n of_o a_o double_a measure_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o elias_n clear_o declare_v 2._o reg._n 2_o ver_fw-la 9_o if_o the_o gift_n do_v necessary_o accompany_v the_o succession_n what_o need_v elizeus_n to_o be_v careful_a of_o the_o gift_n see_v he_o be_v sure_a of_o the_o succession_n the_o holy_a apostle_n of_o christ_n have_v have_v a_o succession_n &_o shall_v have_v unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n to_o who_o belong_v the_o promise_n of_o christ_n behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n mat._n 28._o 20_o but_o who_o be_v to_o be_v call_v true_a successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n we_o apostle_n have_v declare_v already_o in_o the_o 1._o centurie_n take_v our_o ground_n out_o of_o scripture_n act._n 20_o 29._o and_o out_o of_o nazian_n in_o laudem_fw-la athanasii_fw-la that_o darkness_n succeed_v to_o light_n be_v not_o count_v the_o true_a successor_n of_o lignt_n for_o the_o dissimilitude_n that_o be_v between_o darkness_n &_o light_n but_o here_o the_o question_n arise_v whether_o or_o not_o all_o church_n keep_v the_o holy_a apostolic_a doctrine_n be_v bind_v to_o show_v in_o write_v their_o succession_n from_o the_o apostles●…_n as_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o stock_n of_o aaron_n after_o the_o captivity_n produce_v in_o write_v their_o lineal_a descent_n from_o aaron_n nehem._n 7._o to_o this_o tertul_n answer_v lib._n the_o pres●…ript_n adversus_fw-la baret_fw-la that_o church_n true_o keep_v the_o apostolic_a doctrine_n albeit_o they_o can_v not_o show_v in_o write_v their_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n yet_o be_v they_o to_o be_v count_v apostolic_a church_n propter_fw-mi consang_fw-mi vinitatem_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la that_o be_v for_o their_o consanguinity_n of_o doctrine_n but_o to_o come_v near_o and_o to_o examine_v whether_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v keep_v apostolic_a doctrine_n in_o their_o succession_n idolatry_n without_o all_o spot_n of_o heresy_n as_o they_o affirm_v or_o not_o and_o first_o the_o chair_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o free_a of_o the_o heresy_n of_o eutyches_n as_o clear_o appear_v by_o the_o six_o general_a council_n which_o be_v the_o three_o of_o those_o council_n which_o be_v gather_v at_o constantinople_n in_o the_o 12._o year_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o constantinus_n pogonatus_n ann._n 681._o buco●…_n in_o this_o council_n macarius_n patriarch_n of_o antiochia_n and_o stephanus_n his_o disciple_n stand_v up_o &_o pertinacious_o defend_v the_o error_n of_o eutyches_n &_o be_v excommunicate_a by_o the_o council_n yet_o they_o have_v defend_v their_o opinion_n by_o the_o synodicke_n letter_n of_o honorius_n sometime_o b._n of_o rome_n write_v to_o sergius_n b._n of_o constantinople_n wherein_o it_o be_v clear_o know_v that_o honorius_n be_v infect_v with_o the_o error_n of_o eutyches_n for_o the_o which_o cause_n honorius_n b._n of_o rome_n after_o his_o death_n in_o the_o six_o general_a council_n be_v also_o excommunicate_a as_o a_o heretic_n tom_n council_n hist._n magdeb._n this_o be_v not_o unknown_a to_o some_o writer_n who_o notwithstanding_o defend_v this_o opinion_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n can_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o ●…aith_n onuphrius_n say_v that_o the_o act_n of_o the_o six_o general_a council_n contain_v a_o condemnatory_a sentence_n against_o honorius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v corrupt_v by_o the_o grecian_n and_o that_o the_o canon_n of_o this_o council_n as_o they_o be_v set_v forth_o be_v supposititious_a and_o false_a forsooth_o onuphrius_n be_v a_o worthy_a advocate_n to_o plead_v such_o a_o bad_a and_o reprobat_fw-la cause_n the_o faith_n of_o the_o romanist_n lean_v upon_o two_o
under_o the_o conduct_n of_o the_o sultan_n of_o babylon_n wherein_o a_o hundred_o thousand_o man_n be_v slay_v thus_o be_v jerusalem_n recover_v out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o saracen_n with_o great_a effusion_n of_o blood_n and_o godfrey_n crown_v king_n of_o jerusalem_n but_o it_o be_v so_o dear_a buy_v and_o so_o soon_o lose_v again_o for_o this_o kingdom_n continue_v not_o 100_o year_n that_o god_n give_v clear_a testimony_n to_o the_o world_n that_o he_o like_v not_o that_o unhappy_a counci●…l_n of_o claremont●…_n whereby_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o world_n be_v perturb_v and_o blood_n be_v shed_v abundant_o like_o water_n pour_v out_o upon_o the_o ground_n the_o mind_n of_o the_o infidel_n so_o exasperate_v against_o christian_n that_o albeit_o they_o have_v pay_v we_o home_o again_o with_o the_o conquest_n of_o thracia_n bulgaria_n macedonia_n gracia_n ploponesus_fw-la and_o a_o great_a part_n of_o hungaria_n and_o illyricum_n yet_o be_v not_o their_o heart_n satisfy_v but_o set_v on_o edge_n through_o remembrance_n of_o the_o army_n that_o come_v to_o besiege_v jerusalem_n i_o leave_v off_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o unprosperous_a success_n of_o conradus_n 3._o and_o how_o his_o army_n besiege_v iconium_n be_v empoison_v by_o the_o falsehood_n of_o emanvel_a emperor_n of_o constantinople_n and_o the_o success_n of_o lewes_n king_n of_o france_n and_o rogerius_n duke_n of_o sicil_n to_o who_o all_o thing_n succeed_v not_o to_o their_o contentment_n as_o the_o siege_n of_o damascus_n clear_o declare_v no_o better_a success_n have_v philip_n king_n of_o france_n and_o richard_n king_n of_o england_n who_o enterprise_v likewise_o to_o recover_v again_o all_o that_o be_v lose_v but_o king_n richards_n shipwreck_n captivity_n &_o ransom_n 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o voyage_n to_o the_o holy_a land_n seldom_o have_v a_o good_a succ●…sse_n the_o calamity_n of_o barbarossa_n who_o seem_v to_o prosper_v but_o be_v pitiful_o drown_v in_o the_o passage_n of_o a_o river_n and_o final_o the_o compel_v return_v of_o fridericke_n the_o 2._o in_o the_o mid_n of_o his_o victory_n to_o save_v his_o own_o dominion_n from_o the_o outrage_n and_o oppression_n of_o the_o pope_n the_o bad_a success_n i_o say_v of_o all_o these_o expedition_n and_o other_o more_o declare_v that_o god_n give_v not_o his_o blessing_n to_o the_o council_n of_o claremont_n so_o that_o in_o very_a deed_n the_o advancement_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n tend_v to_o the_o calamity_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n the_o second_o tragedy_n that_o follow_v the_o high_a advancement_n of_o the_o b_o of_o rome_n be_v bellum_fw-la pontificium_fw-la other_o call_v it_o tragedy_n bellum_fw-la imperatorium_fw-la a_o cruel_a and_o hateful_a warfare_n between_o the_o emperor_n and_o bishop_n of_o rome_n wherein_o no_o sort_n of_o villainy_n falsehood_n &_o barbarous_a cruelty_n be_v leave_v unpractised_a against_o noble_a and_o worthy_a emperor_n gregory_n 7_o cause_v the_o emperor_n henry_n 4._o at_o canusium_n in_o sharp_a winter_n weather_n to_o stand_v barefooted_a and_o to_o crave_v absolution_n from_o he_o he_o utter_v a_o false_a prophecy_n of_o the_o emperor_n death_n within_o year_n and_o day_n which_o when_o the_o issue_n declare_v to_o be_v a_o lie_a prophecy_n he_o take_v he_o to_o his_o shift_a mental_a meaning_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o spiritual_a death_n of_o the_o emperor_n soul_n and_o not_o ofhi_v bodily_a deathpope_n pascalis_fw-la 2._o stir_v up_o henry_n 5._o against_o his_o own_o natural_a father_n henry_n 4._o and_o cause_v raise_v the_o body_n of_o the_o noble_a emperor_n henry_n 4_o out_o of_o his_o sepulchre_n so_o that_o it_o remain_v 5._o year_n unbury_v pope_n adrian_z 4._o be_v offend_v because_o the_o emperor_n barbarossa_n hold_v his_o left_a stirrup_n in_o stead_n of_o the_o right_a stirrup_n when_o the_o pope_n mount_v up_o upon_o his_o horse_n pope_n alexander3_n trample_a upon_o the_o same_o emperor_n neck_n pope_n gregory_n 9_o by_o his_o curse_n compel_v the_o emperor_n frederick_n 2._o to_o lead_v a_o army_n to_o asia_n against_o the_o turk_n and_o saracen_n and_o in_o his_o absence_n like_a unto_o a_o deceitful_a traitor_n invade_v the_o kingdom_n of_o naples_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o dominion_n which_o in_o heritage_n belong_v to_o the_o emperor_n thus_o we_o see_v clear_o in_o this_o second_o tragedy_n that_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n be_v like_a unto_o the_o melt_v in_o the_o body_n when_o it_o wax_v great_a by_o swell_v and_o simil._n hardness_n all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o noble_a part_n be_v lessen_v and_o become_v weak_a even_o so_o the_o excessive_a preferment_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o undo_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o earth_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n not_o content_v with_o the_o two_o tragedy_n already_o mention_v to_o wit_n to_o have_v fill_v the_o world_n tragedte_n with_o blood_n and_o to_o have_v trample_v the_o emperou●…s_n &_o prince_n under_o foot_n they_o add_v the_o three_o tragedy_n wo●…st_v of_o all_o they_o will_v be_v lawgiver_n sit_v in_o the_o very_a chair_n of_o christ_n and_o make_v of_o none_o effect_v the_o ordinance_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o end_n that_o place_n may_v be_v give_v to_o their_o constitution_n innocentius_n 3_o in_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n confirm_v the_o blasphemous_a doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n ann._n 1215._o in_o the_o general_a council_n hold_v by_o gregory_n 10._o ann._n 1273._o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n be_v promise_v in_o most_o ample_a manner_n to_o those_o that_o will_v be_v mark_v with_o the_o badge_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o will_v go_v and_o fight_v against_o the_o saracen_n but_o christ_n promise_v remission_n of_o sin_n to_o such_o only_a as_o repent_v their_o sin_n believe_v in_o he_o &_o in_o token_n of_o true_a repentance_n to_o these_o who_o bear_v the_o easy_a yocke_n &_o light_a burden_n of_o christ_n mat._n 11._o ver_fw-la 28_o 29._o &_o 30._o in_o the_o general_a council_n gather_v by_o clemens_n 5._o in_o vienne_n ann._n 1311._o it_o be_v ordain_v that_o the_o pope_n shall_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o emperor_n but_o rather_o the_o emperor_n to_o the_o pope_n &_o that_o the_o emperor_n shall_v give_v his_o oath_n of_o alledgance_n to_o the_o pope_n express_v contrary_a to_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n let_v every_o soul_n be_v subject_a unto_o the_o high_a power_n ro._n 13_o ver_fw-la 1._o joh_n 23._o with_o advice_n of_o sigismond_n gather_v a_o general_a council_n at_o constance_n ann._n 1414._o wherein_o the_o very_a testamental_a legacy_n of_o christ_n be_v alter_v and_o impair_v by_o sacrilegious_a prelate_n in_o take_v from_o the_o people_n the_o use_n of_o the_o holy_a cup_n in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o clause_n non_fw-la obstante_fw-la set_v down_o in_o their_o act_n make_v the_o whole_a people_n of_o christendom_n to_o tremble_v that_o they_o dare_v not_o set_v their_o mouth_n against_o the_o heaven_n and_o correct_v the_o ordinance_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o in_o such_o rude_a manner_n that_o notwithstanding_o that_o christ_n institute_v this_o sacrament_n under_o form_n both_o of_o bread_n &_o wine_n yet_o the_o church_n think_v meet_v that_o the_o sacrament_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o laicke_a people_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n only_o the_o late_a council_n of_o basil_n &_o florence_n be_v flat_o repugnant_a one_o to_o another_o in_o the_o head_n of_o supremacy_n and_o last_o of_o all_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n wherein_o some_o piece_n of_o reformation_n be_v expect_v make_v it_o know_v to_o the_o world_n that_o the_o whore_n will_v never_o reform_v the_o borthell_n and_o the_o antichrist_n will_v not_o be_v consume_v with_o the_o breath_n of_o his_o own_o mouth_n but_o with_o the_o breath_n of_o the_o mouth_n of_o christ_n which_o thing_n the_o lord_n perform_v in_o his_o own_o time_n amen_n finis_fw-la a_o short_a compend_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o first_o ten_o persecution_n move_v against_o christian_n divide_v into_o iii_o century_n whereunto_o be_v add_v in_o the_o end_n of_o every_o centurie_n treatise_n arise_v upon_o occasion_n offer_v in_o the_o history_n clear_o declare_v the_o novelty_n of_o popish_a religion_n and_o that_o be_v neither_o flow_v from_o the_o mouth_n of_o christ_n holy_a apostle_n neither_o be_v it_o confirm_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o holy_a martyr_n who_o die_v in_o these_o ten_o persecution_n jerem_n 6._o ver_fw-la 16._o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n stand_v in_o the_o way_n and_o behold_v and_o ask_v of_o the_o old_a way_n which_o be_v the_o good_a way_n and_o walk_v therein_o and_o you_o shall_v find_v rest_n unto_o your_o soul_n but_o they_o say_v we_o will_v not_o walk_v therein_o luc._n 10._o ver_fw-la 42._o marie_n have_v choose_v the_o good_a part_n which_o shall_v not_o be_v take_v a_o way_n from_o she_o edinburgh_n print_v by_o andro_n hart_n
but_o the_o arrian_n and_o eutychian_n heretic_n find_v emperor_n favourable_o incline_v to_o the_o maintenance_n of_o their_o error_n such_o as_o constantius_n and_o valens_n protector_n of_o the_o arrian_n heresy_n and_o anastatius_fw-la and_o heraclius_n favourer_n of_o the_o heresy_n of_o euiyches_n this_o support_n they_o have_v of_o supreme_a power_n strengthen_v the_o a●…me_n of_o heretic_n and_o make_v they_o able_a to_o persecute_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n notwithstanding_o betwixt_o the_o ten_o great_a persecution_n and_o the_o arrian_n pers●…cution_n a_o short_a breathe_a time_n be_v grant_v by_o god_n unto_o his_o church_n who_o will_v not_o suffer_v the_o rod_n of_o the_o wicked_a perpetual_o to_o lie_v upon_o the_o righteous_a lest_o they_o put_v out_o their_o hand_n unto_o iniquity_n the_o day_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o constantine_n be_v the_o breathe_a day_n of_o the_o persecute_a church_n man_n banish_v for_o the_o cause_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o emperor_n edict_n be_v return_v from_o their_o banishment_n restore_v to_o their_o office_n dignity_n and_o possession_n which_o due_o belong_v unto_o they_o the_o heritage_n and_o good_n of_o such_o as_o have_v suffer_v death_n for_o the_o cause_n of_o christ_n be_v allot_v to_o their_o near_a kinsman_n and_o incase_o none_o of_o these_o be_v find_v alive_a than_o their_o good_n be_v ordain_v to_o appertain_v unto_o the_o church_n these_o beginning_n of_o a_o admirable_a change_n of_o the_o estate_n of_o persecute_a 2._o man_n wrought_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o people_n a_o wonderful_a astonishment_n consider_v within_o themselves_o what_o can_v be_v the_o event_n of_o such_o sudden_a and_o unexpected_a alteration_n the_o care_n that_o constantine_n have_v to_o disburden_v persecute_a christian_n of_o that_o heavy_a yoke_n of_o persecution_n that_o press_v they_o down_o so_o long_o be_v not_o only_o extend_v to_o the_o bound_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n whereinto_o constantine_n be_v sovereign_a lord_n and_o absolute_a commander_n but_o he_o be_v careful_a also_o to_o procure_v the_o peace_n of_o christian_n who_o live_v under_o sapores_fw-la king_n of_o persia_n 14._o who_o vex_v christian_n people_n with_o sore_a &_o grievous_a persecution_n so_o that_o within_o his_o dominion_n more_o than_o sixteen_o thousand_o be_v find_v who_o have_v conclude_v their_o life_n by_o martyrdom_n among_o who_o simeon_n bishop_n of_o selentia_n &_o ustazares_n the_o king_n elder_a eunuch_n &_o his_o nurs-father_n in_o time_n of_o his_o minority_n pusices_n ruler_n of_o all_o the_o king_n artificer_n azade_v the_o king_n belove_a eunuch_n 13._o &_o acepcimas_n a_o bishop_n in_o persia_n all_o these_o be_v man_n of_o note_n and_o mark_v who_o suffer_v martyrdom_n under_o sapores_fw-la king_n of_o persia._n while_o the_o cogitation_n of_o constantine_n be_v exercise_v with_o meditation_n 15._o by_o what_o mean_v the_o distress_a estate_n of_o christian_n in_o persia_n may_v be_v support_v by_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n the_o ambassador_n of_o sapores_fw-la king_n of_o persia_n come_v to_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n who_o petition_n when_o he_o have_v grant_v he_o send_v they_o back_o again_o to_o their_o lord_n and_o master_n and_o he_o send_v with_o they_o a_o letter_n of_o his_o own_o entreat_v sapores_fw-la to_o be_v friendly_a to_o christian_n in_o who_o religion_n nothing_o can_v be_v find_v that_o can_v just_o be_v blame_v his_o letter_n also_o bare_a the_o bad_a fortune_n of_o the_o emperor_n valerian_n the_o viii_o persecuter_n of_o christian_n and_o how_o miserable_o he_o end_v his_o life_n and_o on_o the_o other_o part_n what_o good_a success_n the_o lord_n have_v give_v unto_o himself_o in_o all_o his_o battle_n because_o he_o be_v a_o defender_n of_o christian_n and_o a_o procurer_n of_o their_o peace_n what_o peace_n be_v procure_v to_o distress_a christian_n in_o persia_n by_o this_o letter_n of_o constantine_n the_o history_n bear_v not_o always_o his_o endeavour_n be_v honest_a and_o godly_a in_o constantine_n day_n the_o gospel_n be_v propagate_v in_o east_n india_n by_o frumentius_n and_o edesius_n the_o brother_n son_n of_o meropius_n a_o man_n of_o tyrus_n this_o history_n be_v write_v at_o length_n by_o r●…ffinus_n theodoretus_n 6._o sozomenus_n and_o many_o other_o likewise_o it_o be_v propagate_v in_o iberia_n a_o country_n lie_v in_o the_o uttermost_a part_n of_o the_o euxien_a sea_n eastward_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o a_o captive_a christian_a woman_n by_o who_o supplication_n first_o a_o child_n deadly_a disease_a recover_a health_n and_o afterward_o the_o queen_n of_o iberia_n herself_o be_v relieve_v from_o a_o perilous_a and_o dangerous_a disease_n by_o her_o prayer_n make_v to_o christ_n the_o king_n of_o iberia_n send_v ambassador_n to_o constantine_n crave_v of_o he_o that_o he_o will_v send_v preacher_n and_o doctor_n to_o the_o country_n of_o iberia_n who_o may_v instruct_v they_o in_o the_o true_a faith_n of_o christ_n which_o desire_n also_o constantine_n perform_v with_o great_a gladness_n of_o heart_n now_o to_o return_v and_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o dominion_n subject_a to_o the_o roman_a empire_n constantine_n the_o son_n of_o constantius_n chlorus_n begin_v to_o reign_v in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 310._o and_o he_o reign_v 31._o year_n he_o give_v commandment_n to_o re-edify_v the_o temple_n of_o 4._o the_o christian_n that_o be_v demolish_v in_o time_n of_o the_o persecution_n of_o dioclesian_n this_o commandment_n be_v obey_v with_o expedition_n and_o many_o more_o large_a and_o ample_a church_n be_v build_v meet_v for_o the_o convention_n of_o christian_a people_n likewise_o the_o temple_n of_o idol_n be_v lock_v up_o better_o they_o have_v be_v demolish_v and_o equal_v with_o the_o ground_n then_o have_v it_o be_v a_o 18_o work_n of_o great_a difficulty_n to_o julian_n the_o apostate_n to_o have_v resto●…ed_v again_o heathen_a idolatry_n many_o horrible_a abuse_n both_o in_o religion_n and_o manner_n be_v reform_v by_o the_o auzhoritie_n and_o commandment_n of_o the_o emperor_n such_o as_o cubitus_fw-la mensuralis_fw-la call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o egypt_n whereunto_o be_v attribute_v the_o virtue_n and_o cause_n of_o the_o inundation_n of_o nilus_n by_o the_o egyptian_n therefore_o by_o 30._o the_o emperor_n commandment_n this_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v transport_v out_o of_o their_o temple_n in_o rome_n the_o bloody_a spectacle_n of_o gladiatores_fw-la that_o be_v of_o fence_a man_n with_o sword_n kill_v one_o another_o in_o sight_n of_o 18._o the_o people_n be_v discharge_v in_o heliopolis_n a_o town_n of_o phoenitia_n the_o filthy_a manner_n of_o young_a woman_n accustom_v without_o controlment_n to_o prostitute_v themselves_o to_o the_o lust_n of_o stranger_n until_o they_o be_v marry_v this_o filthy_a custom_n i_o say_v by_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n be_v interdict_v and_o forbid_v in_o judea_n the_o altar_n build_v under_o the_o oak_n of_o mambre_n where_o the_o 8._o angel_n appear_v to_o abraham_n and_o whereupon_o the_o pagan_n offer_v sacrifice_v in_o time_n of_o solemn_a fair_n for_o buy_v and_o sell_v of_o 18._o merchand_n waire_z in_o that_o place_n this_o altar_n i_o say_v be_v command_v to_o be_v demolish_v and_o a_o temple_n to_o be_v build_v in_o the_o same_o place_n for_o exercise_v of_o divine_a service_n 4._o the_o care_n this_o good_a emperor_n have_v to_o quench_v the_o schism_n that_o begin_v in_o alexandria_n shall_v be_v decla●…ed_v in_o the_o own_o time_n god_n will_v in_o somethinge_n constantine_n be_v not_o unlike_a to_o king_n solomon_n who_o find_v his_o kingdom_n to_o be_v peaceable_o settle_v he_o give_v himself_o to_o the_o build_n of_o the_o temple_n of_o palace_n and_o of_o town_n which_o he_o fortify_v &_o make_v strong_a even_o so_o constantine_n find_v that_o no_o enemy_n dare_v enterprise_v any_o long_a 2._o to_o molest_v the_o peaceable_a estate_n of_o his_o settle_a kingdom_n he_o build_v magnific_a temple_n in_o bethlehem_n the_o place_n of_o the_o lord_n nativity_n upon_o mount_n olivet_n from_o whence_o christ_n ascend_v to_o heaven_n upon_o mount_n caluarie_n where_o christ_n sepulchre_n be_v he_o build_v also_o a_o city_n in_o bithynia_n and_o call_v it_o helenopolis_n for_o honour_n of_o his_o mother_n helena_n and_o another_o in_o 18._o palestina_n and_o call_v it_o constantia_n by_o the_o name_n of_o his_o sister_n also_o he_o build_v a_o glorious_a temple_n into_o antiochia_n which_o his_o son_n constantius_n perfect_v and_o to_o the_o dedication_n of_o that_o temple_n a_o great_a number_n of_o bishop_n be_v assemble_v as_o shall_v be_v declare_v hereafter_o if_o the_o lord_n please_v and_o final_o he_o build_v the_o chronolog_n great_a city_n of_o constantinople_n in_o thracia_n and_o call_v it_o nova_fw-la roma_fw-la whereas_o before_o it_o be_v call_v byzantium_n this_o town_n be_v build_v anno_fw-la 336._o in_o end_v the_o good_a
malachi_n who_o say_v curse_v be_v the_o deceiver_n which_o have_v 14_o in_o his_o flock_n a_o male_a and_o vow_v and_o sacrifice_v unto_o the_o lord_n a_o corrupt_a thing_n this_o ground_n be_v first_o lay_v that_o the_o principal_a purpose_n where_o ●…t_a the_o prophet_n aim_v be_v not_o unknown_a it_o be_v the_o more_o e●…sie_a to_o step_v to●…_n to_o the_o word_n the_o prophet_n bring_v in_o the_o lord_n say_v call_v upon_o i_o in_o the_o dry_a of_o thy_o trouble_n &c_n &c_n this_o presupponeth_n that_o we_o shall_v be_v exercise_v with_o manifold_a trouble_n as_o our_o master_n christ_n jesus_n be_v crown_v with_o thorn_n before_o he_o be_v crown_v with_o glory_n yea_o and_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v so_o dash_v with_o the_o vehement_a 29_o tempest_n of_o trouble_n that_o except_o we_o be_v well_o teach_v in_o the_o school_n of_o god_n we_o shall_v not_o know_v what_o hand_n to_o turn_v we_o unto_o as_o the_o shipman_n do_v who_o sail_v with_o ionas_n every_o man_n pray_v to_o his_o own_o god_n only_a jonas_n who_o be_v teach_v in_o the_o 1_o right_a school_n direct_v his_o prayer_n to_o the_o live_a god_n who_o make_v the_o heaven_n &_o the_o earth_n and_o be_v hear_v when_o he_o pray_v out_o of_o the_o whale_n belly_n now_o see_v that_o god_n invit_v we_o 2_o to_o be_v his_o disciple_n and_o he_o will_v teach_v we_o to_o who_o and_o in_o what_o manner_n we_o shall_v pray_v in_o time_n of_o our_o trouble_n let_v we_o lend_v our_o ear_n to_o our_o great_a schoolmaster_n &_o not_o be_v ashamed_a to_o open_v our_o e●…re_n and_o to_o bind_v up_o our_o mouth_n with_o silence_n when_o the_o lord_n speak_v and_o count_v all_o the_o speech_n of_o father_n that_o repugn_v unto_o this_o great_a oracle_n of_o god_n to_o be_v like_a unto_o ear_n of_o corn_n wither_v thin_a and_o blast_v with_o the_o east_n wind_n wherein_o there_o be_v no_o nourish_a food_n similitud●…_n in_o the_o second_o part_n of_o this_o treatise_n it_o be_v to_o be_v prove_v that_o prayer_n be_v a_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n only_o to_o be_v offer_v to_o god_n and_o to_o none_o other_o neither_o in_o heaven_n nor_o in_o earth_n for_o three_o principal_a reason_n first_o in_o scripture_n we_o be_v teach_v to_o pray_v to_o he_o only_o in_o who_o we_o trust_v and_o consequent_o to_o pray_v only_o to_o god._n the_o apostle_n paul_n say_v but_o how_o shall_v they_o call_v on_o 14._o he_o in_o who_o they_o have_v not_o bel●…eved_v yea_o and_o the_o prophet_n jeremie_n say_v curse_a be_v he_o that_o trust_v in_o man_n and_o make_v flesh_n his_o ari●…e_n and_o with-dr_a weth_z his_o heart_n from_o the_o lord_n god_n be_v the_o just_a 5_o proprietare_n and_o owner_n of_o our_o soul_n for_o he_o have_v buy_v and_o purchase_v they_o with_o his_o own_o blood_n and_o the_o lord_n will_v part_v 28_o stake_n with_o no_o man_n neither_o can_v he_o admit_v a_o corrival_n in_o point_n of_o his_o honour_n as_o the_o natural_a mother_n can_v not_o abide_v to_o see_v her_o son_n divide_v because_o he_o appertain_v total_o and_o whole_o 4_o unto_o herself_o so_o can_v not_o god_n abide_v that_o his_o glory_n be_v give_v unto_o another_o or_o yet_o that_o any_o part_n of_o that_o thing_n that_o be_v once_o dedicate_v to_o god_n shall_v be_v convert_v to_o another_o use_n in_o holy_a scripture_n we_o read_v of_o three_o most_o abominable_a altar_n to_o wit_n of_o the_o a●…tar_n of_o damascus_n and_o the_o altar_n of_o bethel_n and_o 10_o the_o altar_n at_o athens_n to_o the_o unknown_a god._n the_o altar_n of_o damascus_n be_v abominable_a because_o it_o be_v build_v to_o the_o worship_n of_o a_o false_a god_n the_o altar_n of_o bethel_n be_v abominable_a because_o on_o it_o the_o true_a god_n be_v worship_v in_o a_o forbid_a manner_n 15_o and_o the_o altar_n of_o athens_n to_o the_o unknown_a god_n be_v abominable_a because_o they_o neither_o know_v who_o they_o worship_v 23_o nor_o yet_o the_o right_a manner_n of_o his_o worship_v therefore_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o worship_v of_o god_n let_v we_o set_v our_o compass_n right_a lest_o a_o little_a aberration_n procure_v a_o great_a shipwreck_n and_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o prayer_n let_v we_o call_v upon_o he_o only_o in_o who_o we_o trust_v as_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o holy_a apostle_n and_o let_v we_o offer_v 5_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n acceptable_a to_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n the_o second_o argument_n whereby_o i_o prove_v that_o our_o prayer_n shall_v be_v make_v only_o to_o god_n be_v this_o we_o shall_v pray_v only_o to_o he_o who_o be_v omnipotent_a and_o can_v support_v we_o in_o all_o our_o distress_n ergo_fw-la we_o ought_v to_o pray_v only_o to_o god._n the_o antecedent_n of_o this_o argument_n be_v evident_a by_o the_o latter_a part_n of_o that_o short_a prayer_n indict_v by_o christ_n to_o his_o disciple_n for_o thou_o be_v the_o 13_o kingdom_n and_o the_o power_n and_o the_o glory_n for_o ever_o in_o that_o short_a form_n of_o perfect_a prayer_n the_o first_o word_n lead_v we_o to_o a_o consideration_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n towards_o we_o who_o be_v content_a to_o be_v our_o father_n in_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o last_o word_n his_o power_n be_v describe_v to_o be_v infinite_a such_o as_o become_v he_o who_o be_v king_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n who_o like_v as_o he_o have_v make_v all_o thing_n so_o likewise_o have_v he_o a_o absolute_a sovereignitie_n over_o all_o thing_n both_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n now_o that_o omnipotency_n be_v a_o attribute_n only_o belong_v to_o the_o divine_a nature_n the_o very_a gentile_n can_v not_o deny_v it_o who_o attribute_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d only_o to_o god_n and_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o all_o the_o angel_n of_o heaven_n can_v not_o have_v support_v the_o disastrous_a estate_n of_o man_n after_o his_o 3_o fall_n if_o god_n himself_o have_v not_o put_v hand_n to_o work_v who_o only_o know_v the_o way_n how_o his_o justice_n and_o mercy_n can_v kiss_v one_o another_o in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o mediator_n therefore_o see_v god_n only_o be_v omnipotent_a and_o none_o but_o he_o what_o fool_n be_v we_o to_o put_v our_o trust_n under_o the_o shadow_n of_o the_o bramble_n as_o the_o sichemite_n 15_o do_v and_o not_o to_o dwell_v in_o the_o secret_a of_o the_o most_o high_a and_o abide_v in_o the_o shadow_n of_o the_o almighty_a i_o do_v no_o wrong_n to_o the_o angel_n in_o heaven_n when_o i_o compare_v they_o to_o bramble_n in_o comparison_n 1_o of_o the_o eternal_a god_n their_o power_n be_v finite_a and_o bound_v th●…ir_a provident_a care_n over_o we_o have_v a_o beginning_n namely_o the_o time_n of_o their_o employment_n whereinto_o god_n appoint_v they_o to_o attend_v upon_o we_o but_o the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v infinite_a &_o in_o his_o provident_a 7_o care_n he_o appoint_v a_o kingdom_n for_o we_o before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v lay_v let_v we_o therefore_o trust_v under_o this_o 34_o shadow_n of_o the_o almighty_a and_o call_v upon_o he_o in_o who_o we_o trust_v three_o it_o may_v be_v prove_v that_o we_o shall_v pray_v to_o god_n only_o and_o to_o none_o other_o because_o their_o be_v neither_o commandment_n nor_o example_n nor_o promise_n to_o be_v hear_v in_o scripture_n except_o that_o prayer_n be_v make_v to_o the_o creator_n only_o and_o not_o unto_o the_o creature_n of_o god._n and_o in_o this_o argument_n i_o find_v that_o some_o learned_a papist_n give_v over_o reason_v in_o the_o contrary_a and_o they_o render_v reason_n wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o example_n in_o the_o old_a or_o new_a testament_n of_o invocation_n of_o saint_n namely_o this_o that_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n the-patriarch_n and_o prophet_n who_o depart_v this_o life_n go_v not_o present_o to_o heaven_n and_o have_v not_o the_o fruition_n of_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n incontinent_a but_o they_o go_v to_o limbus_n patrum_fw-la where_o their_o soul_n remain_v until_o christ_n die_v and_o arise_v again_o from_o death_n and_o then_o he_o carry_v their_o soul_n to_o heaven_n and_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n say_v they_o wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o example_n find_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n of_o invocation_n of_o saint_n likewise_o they_o say_v concern_v the_o new_a testament_n that_o if_o the_o apostle_n have_v set_v down_o any_o precept_n concern_v invocation_n of_o saint_n it_o will_v have_v seem_v unto_o the_o people_n that_o they_o be_v desirous_a that_o this_o honour_n shall_v be_v do_v unto_o themselves_o after_o their_o death_n these_o be_v the_o foolish_a conjecture_n of_o eccius_n nevertheless_o the_o place_n that_o papist_n cite_v out_o of_o scripture_n to_o prove_v invocation_n of_o saint_n declare_v with_o what_o
righteousness_n the_o affair_n of_o their_o kingdom_n bamba●…_n king_n of_o goth_n which_o nation_n reign_v in_o spain_n resign_v the_o title_n of_o his_o royal_a authouritie_n to_o euringus_fw-la and_o enter_v into_o a_o mon●…erie_n s●…bbus_n king_n of_o the_o oriental_a saxon_n leave_v his_o kingdom_n and_o enter_v into_o a_o monastery_n &_o to_o the_o end_n that_o it_o may_v seem_v that_o god_n give_v allowance_n unto_o this_o superstition_n false_a 11_o miracle_n be_v invent_v to_o grace_v this_o fact_n of_o sebbus_n for_o the_o tomb_n whereinto_o his_o body_n be_v lay_v be_v ●…n_a length_n a_o hand_n br●…_n short_a than_o his_o corpse_n be_v miraculous_o enlarge_v and_o lengthen_v to_o the_o just_a proportion_n of_o his_o dead_a body_n so_o that_o in_o the_o seven_o centurie_n and_o about_o the_o day_n of_o pope_n vitalia●…s_n it_o be_v a_o proverb_n in_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o people_n that_o three_o adm_n rabble_n thing_n s_o feil_fw-fr out_o in_o their_o age_n first_o innumerable_a abbaci●…s_n be_v build_v second_o the_o head_n of_o king_n be_v 6_o shave_v and_o they_o enter_v into_o monastries_n three_o that_o whoredom_n wa●…_n canonize_v that_o be_v notable_a ●…arlots_n be_v count_v saint_n so_o with_o the_o increase_a number_n of_o monast●…ies_n superstition_n false_a miracle_n and_o a_o lewd_a conversation_n in_o like_a manner_n daily_o increase_v in_o the_o eight_o centurie_n rachis_n king_n of_o lombardis_a ponti●…_n enter_v into_o the_o abbacie_n call_v cassinerse_a in_o italy_n and_o his_o brother_n aistulphus_n govern_v the_o affair_n of_o the_o kingdom_n in_o the_o day_n of_o pope_n zachari●…_n caralomannus_fw-la the_o elder_a brother_n of_o pipinus_fw-la king_n of_o france_n be_v first_o in_o the_o monastery_n build_v upon_o the_o mount_n sarapte_v afterward_o in_o the_o monastery_n call_v cassin●…nse_n whether_o voluntary_o or_o against_o his_o will_n i_o dispute_v not_o and_o 10_o he_o end_v his_o life_n in_o the_o monastery_n of_o vienne_n in_o france_n be_v transport_v thither_o against_o his_o heart_n by_o the_o violence_n of_o his_o brother_n pipinus_fw-la in_o the_o nine_o and_o ten_o century_n the_o bilshop_n of_o rome_n find_v that_o their_o estate_n be_v mighty_o advance_v by_o abbacy_n and_o nunnery_n they_o also_o on_o the_o other_o part_n endeavour_v to_o advance_v the_o monastic_a life_n in_o so_o far_o that_o king_n &_o prince_n be_v allure_v to_o profef●…_n themselves_o to_o be_v of_o the_o order_n of_o monk_n with_o dispensation_n not_o the_o less_o to_o they_o from_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n under_o who_o sovereignity_n all_o high_a power_n begin_v 7_o to_o stoop_v to_o govern_v their_o own_o kingdom_n provide_v always_o that_o with_o liberal_a gift_n they_o have_v enrich_v the_o chair_n of_o rome_n so_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o world_n see_v a_o rare_a and_o uncouth_a 30_o spectacle_n to_o wit_n kingly_a monk_n and_o monk_n king_n yea_o and_o king_n be_v so_o bewitch_v with_o seduce_a speech_n that_o they_o who_o will_v not_o abase_v their_o royal_a estate_n with_o participation_n of_o monkish_a order_n yet_o they_o think_v it_o be_v so_o holy_a and_o meritorious_a a_o turn_n to_o build_v monastery_n that_o by_o so_o do_v they_o may_v merit_v forgiveness_n of_o heinous_a sin_n as_o edgarus_n king_n of_o england_n a_o man_n contaminate_v with_o many_o vild_a spot_n of_o sin_n such_o as_o adultery_n murder_n tyranny_n and_o a_o a●…tender_n upon_o three_o notable_a harlot_n yet_o because_o he_o be_v accustom_v every_o year_n to_o build_v a_o abbacy_n this_o holy_a fact_n abolish_v the_o remembrance_n of_o all_o his_o fault_n and_o make_v he_o worthy_a af●…er_n his_o death_n to_o have_v his_o name_n tog●…ther_o with_o the_o name_n of_o w●…frida_n a_o holy_a nun_n and_o yet_o the_o king_n whore_n &_o the_o name_n of_o her_o daughter_n ed●…ha_n who_o she_o do_v bear_v to_o the_o king_n all_z their_o name_n i_o say_v be_v count_v britan._n worthy_a to_o be_v enroll_v in_o the_o catalogue_n of_o saint_n caziminus_fw-la king_n of_o poll_n be_v drive_v from_o his_o kingdom_n enter_v into_o a_o monastery_n of_o france_n in_o the_o day_n of_o benedict_n the_o nine_o and_o the_o polo●…ian_a ambassador_n who_o come_v to_o france_n to_o entrait_v their_o king_n to_o return_v again_o to_o his_o kingdom_n &_o w●…re_v fore_o grieve_v at_o his_o 6_o negative_a a_o be_v yet_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o pope_n benedict_n the_o nine_o at_o who_o hand_n all_o thing_n may_v have_v be●…ne_v obtain_v for_o money_n they_o obtain_v their_o king_n again_o with_o liberty_n to_o he_o to_o marry_v and_o to_o procreate_v child_n if_o monastic_a vow_n be_v lawful_a the_o lose_n of_o the_o band_n of_o monastic_a vow_n for_o money_n be_v not_o lawful_a this_o bened●…ctus_fw-la the_o nine_o be_v he_o of_o who_o platina_n write_v that_o after_o his_o death_n his_o effigy_n appear_v unto_o a_o c●…rtaine_a man_n horrible_a and_o monstrous_a more_o like_o the_o similitu●…e_n po●…tif_n of_o a_o beast_n then_o of_o a_o man_n which_o betoken_v the_o beastly_a conversation_n of_o this_o unhappy_a pope_n in_o his_o life-time_n the_o example_n of_o late_a day_n that_o be_v recent_a in_o all_o man_n memory_n of_o lord_n earl_n duke_n lady_n yea_o and_o of_o the_o emperor_n charles_n the_o five_o in_o his_o old_a day_n who_o enter_v into_o monastries_n and_o nunnery_n whether_o to_o lead_v or_o to_o conclude_v their_o life-time_n i_o pass_v over_o with_o silence_n this_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o monk_n since_o the_o six_o hundred_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n until_o our_o day_n that_o king_n monarch_n pope_n and_o mighty_a man_n in_o the_o world_n magnify_v their_o estate_n by_o repair_v old_a monastery_n build_v new_a abbacy_n and_o bestow_v great_a revenue_n and_o rent_n upon_o they_o and_o some_o time_n as_o say_v be_v enter_v themselves_o into_o monastries_n either_o to_o lead_v or_o to_o end_v their_o life_n monastery_n also_o of_o late_a day_n become_v place_n of_o imprisonment_n especial_o of_o noble_a person_n deject_v from_o their_o anteriour_a dignity_n so_o that_o pope_n christophorus_n himself_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o emperor_n lodovicus_n the_o third_o be_v deject_v from_o his_o papal_a dignity_n be_v thrust_v into_o a_o monastery_n unicum_fw-la 〈◊〉_d refugium_fw-la as_o say_v platina_n that_o be_v the_o only_a refuge_n pontif._n of_o man_n who_o be_v in_o calamity_n constantine_n the_o son_n of_o the_o emperor_n leo_n thrust_v his_o brethren_n into_o a_o monastery_n rendri_fw-la g●…unto_o they_o a_o just_a recompense_n of_o the_o like_a inhumanity_n that_o they_o 6_o have_v practise_v against_o their_o own_o father_n likewise_o monastries_n become_v place_n whereinto_o man_n enter_v to_o sorrow_n for_o bypass_a offence_n imagine_v that_o by_o the_o strict_a observation_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o monastic_a life_n they_o may_v obtain_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o god._n paulus_n cyprius_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n before_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a enter_v into_o a_o monastery_n and_o lament_v for_o that_o he_o have_v consent_v to_o the_o abolish_n of_o image_n in_o the_o council_n assemble_v by_o constantinus_n copronymus_n this_o paulus_n cyprius_n be_v a_o man_n of_o a_o base_a timorous_a and_o feeble_a spirit_n who_o never_o know_v what_o the_o godly_a sorrow_n describe_v by_o the_o apostle_n paul_n do_v mean_a which_o cause_v repentance_n to_o salvation_n not_o to_o be_v repent_v for_o he_o have_v great_a need_n to_o have_v repent_v this_o his_o repentance_n and_o his_o sorrow_n be_v not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d whereof_o paul_n speak_v 2._o corint_fw-la 7._o this_o bastard_n glory_n above_o specify_v whereof_o monk_n rejoice_v when_o the_o fir●…t_a ornament_n be_v lose_v do_v rather_o belong_v to_o the_o conuentuall_a monk_n than_o to_o the_o anachorite_n we_o read_v not_o of_o king_n who_o delit_v to_o exchange_v their_o kingdom_n with_o the_o solitary_a live_n by_o themselves_o apart_o in_o the_o wilderness_n except_o suatacopius_fw-la king_n of_o moravia_n who_o be_v overcome_v in_o 13_o battle_n by_o the_o emperor_n arnulphus_n he_o go_v to_o the_o wilderness_n wherein_o he_o continue_v until_o the_o day_n of_o his_o death_n eat_v herb_n and_o drink_v water_n with_o great_a contentment_n of_o mind_n than_o he_o live_v before_o in_o the_o pleasure_n of_o his_o kingdom_n as_o concern_v ●…saphat_a king_n of_o india_n of_o who_o damascene_fw-la write_v historia_n that_o he_o forsake_v his_o kingdom_n and_o go_v to_o the_o wilderness_n and_o exercise_v himself_o continual_o in_o read_v and_o pray_v for_o the_o space_n of_o five_o and_o thirty_o year_n it_o be_v but_o a_o fabulous_a narration_n and_o the_o writer_n of_o it_o can_v cite_v so_o much_o as_o one_o approve_a author_n for_o confirmation_n of_o his_o allege_v history_n but_o the_o purpose_n of_o damascene_fw-la be_v to_o confirm_v a_o
chastity_n see_v that_o marriage_n be_v honourable_a among_o all_o and_o the_o bed_n undefiled_a but_o the_o vow_n of_o virginal_a 4_o chastity_n be_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o fool_n as_o if_o a_o man_n will_v vow_v to_o be_v a_o preacher_n before_o he_o be_v persuade_v that_o god_n have_v vouchsafe_v upon_o he_o the_o gift_n of_o preach_v even_o so_o it_o be_v a_o foolish_a thing_n to_o any_o man_n to_o bind_v himself_o by_o a_o solemn_a vow_n to_o virginal_a chastity_n before_o he_o be_v full_o persuade_v that_o god_n have_v vouchsafe_v upon_o he_o that_o rare_a gift_n under_o pretence_n of_o the_o vow_n of_o poverty_n a_o number_n of_o monk_n especial_o abbot_n channon_n and_o capitulare_fw-la monk_n as_o it_o be_v bishop_n chief_a counsellor_n have_v heap_v up_o infinite_a riches_n and_o in_o pomp_n wealth_n civil_a pre-eminence_n and_o splendour_n of_o worldly_a magnificence_n have_v over-went_a earl_n lord_n and_o baron_n in_o many_o country_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n they_o be_v but_o a_o nest_n of_o idle_a belly_n keep_v for_o a_o fashion_n seven_o canonical_a hour_n which_o they_o spend_v in_o read_v &_o sing_v often_o by_o their_o substitute_n then_o by_o themselves_o as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v ca●…led_v canonici_fw-la for_o keep_v canonical_a hour_n and_o not_o for_o st●…dying_v holy_a canonicke_a scripture_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v be_v able_a to_o interpret_v it_o to_o the_o utility_n of_o other_o concern_v the_o vow_n of_o obedience_n keep_v in_o all_o order_n but_o more_o strict_o among_o the_o layolites_n than_o all_o the_o rest_n the_o commandment_n of_o god_n shall_v have_v be_v observe_v whereinto_o 5_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o father_n must_v be_v regard_v in_o such_o sort_n that_o if_o he_o ratify_v not_o the_o vow_n of_o his_o young_a daughter_n remain_v as_o yet_o in_o his_o house_n than_o her_o vow_n be_v undo_v and_o can_v stand_v even_o so_o the_o vow_v that_o mortal_a man_n do_v make_v in_o earth_n if_o they_o be_v not_o ratify_v by_o the_o allowance_n of_o our_o heavenly_a father_n they_o be_v undo_v and_o can_v consist_v and_o stand_v notwithstanding_o the_o commander_n among_o the_o layolites_n will_v try_v the_o obedience_n of_o their_o disciple_n in_o matter_n unhonest_a uncomely_a ungodly_a and_o devilish_a such_o as_o to_o walter_n themselves_o into_o a_o filthy_a mire_n if_o so_o it_o please_v the_o commander_n to_o enjoin_v &_o to_o violate_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o phis●…ion_n in_o rub_v that_o thing_n outward_o upon_o the_o body_n which_o the_o physician_n command_v to_o be_v eat_v by_o the_o disease_a person_n and_o in_o drink_v that_o liquor_n of_o oil_n wherewith_o the_o physician_n appoint_v the_o body_n to_o be_v anoint_v also_o in_o command_v ●…heir_a disciple_n to_o kill_v christian_a prince_n have_v god_n keep_v silence_n in_o his_o bless_a word_n and_o by_o his_o taciturnity_n give_v a_o secret_a allowance_n to_o such_o ungodly_a commandment_n read_v the_o scripture_n of_o god_n whereinto_o he_o forbid_v to_o touch_v the_o anoint_v of_o the_o lord_n but_o they_o have_v touch_v the_o anoint_v 15_o of_o the_o lord_n even_o betwixt_o the_o porch_n and_o the_o altar_n not_o ashamed_a to_o defile_v their_o holy_a sacrament_n of_o auricular_a confession_n with_o treasonable_a consultation_n against_o the_o anoint_v of_o the_o lord_n to_o conclude_v the_o order_n of_o monk_n from_o appearance_n of_o commendable_a beginning_n have_v degenerate_v so_o far_o that_o they_o who_o seem_v to_o be_v star_n fix_v in_o heaven_n and_o shine_v with_o the_o splendour_n of_o celestial_a light_n in_o end_n they_o be_v become_v busybody_n practiser_n of_o treason_n under_o colour_n of_o late_a invent_a sacrament_n who_o the_o lord_n in_o his_o own_o time_n with_o the_o tempest_n of_o his_o wrath_n will_v scatter_v as_o dust_n and_o no_o man_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o gather_v they_o again_o finis_fw-la centurie_n v._n chap_n i_o of_o emperor_n arcadius_n and_o honorius_n the_o good_a emperor_n theodosius_n leave_v behind_o he_o two_o son_n arcadius_n to_o govern_v the_o east_n part_n and_o 23_o honorius_n the_o west_n arcadius_n reign_v 14._o year_n he_o be_v a_o meek_a and_o godly_a emperor_n but_o not_o courageous_a as_o his_o father_n have_v be_v his_o simplicity_n be_v abuse_v by_o eudoxia_n his_o wife_n ruffinus_n his_o chief_a counsellor_n and_o gania_n his_o chief_a captain_n eudoxia_n be_v offend_v at_o the_o freedom_n that_o chrysostome_n use_v in_o reprove_v of_o sin_n and_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o theophilus_n b._n of_o alexandria_n procure_v his_o deposition_n theophilus_n have_v gather_v a_o synod_n at_o the_o oak_n of_o chalcedon_n because_o chrysostome_n be_v warn_v refuse_v to_o compeare_v they_o convict_v he_o of_o contumacy_n and_o depose_v he_o after_o deposition_n follow_v banishment_n from_o which_o the_o affection_a mind_n of_o the_o people_n towards_o their_o pastor_n constrain_v the_o emperor_n to_o reduce_v he_o again_o yet_o eudoxia_n continue_v in_o her_o malice_n and_o procure_v by_o the_o mean_n of_o theophilus_n his_o second_o deposition_n and_o banishment_n with_o commandment_n to_o journey_n his_o weak_a body_n with_o excessive_a travail_n from_o place_n to_o place_n until_o he_o conclude_v his_o life_n 28._o reffinus_fw-la stir_v up_o alaricus_n king_n of_o the_o goth_n to_o fight_v against_o arcadius_n secret_o presume_v to_o the_o kingdom_n but_o his_o three_fw-mi sonable_a interprise_n be_v espy_v he_o be_v slay_v &_o his_o head_n and_o right_a hand_n be_v hang_v up_o upon_o the_o port_n of_o constantinople_n gama_n of_o a_o simple_a soldier_n be_v make_v general_a commander_n of_o arcadius_n his_o army_n he_o wax_v insolent_a and_o proud_a affect_v the_o kingdom_n be_v in_o blood_n a_o stranger_n of_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o goth_n in_o religion_n a_o arrian_n he_o crave_v a_o petition_n of_o the_o emperor_n that_o he_o may_v have_v one_o of_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n whereinto_o he_o may_v serve_v god_n according_a to_o his_o 32_o own_o form_n but_o this_o petition_n by_o the_o prudent_a advice_n of_o chrysostome_n give_v to_o the_o emperor_n be_v reject_v and_o the_o pride_n of_o gaina_n for_o a_o time_n be_v something_o abate_v honorius_n reign_v in_o the_o west_n all_o the_o day_n of_o his_o brother_n arcadius_n and_o 15._o year_n after_o his_o death_n the_o whole_a time_n of_o his_o government_n be_v very_o troublesome_a gildo_n his_o lieutenant_n in_o 3_o africa_n usurp_v the_o dominion_n of_o africa_n and_o maseelzer_n his_o brother_n who_o at_o the_o first_o detest_v treasonable_a interprise_n in_o his_o brother_n yet_o afterward_o follow_v his_o brother_n footstep_n and_o receive_v the_o just_a deserve_a reward_n of_o his_o unconstancy_n for_o he_o be_v slay_v by_o his_o own_o soldier_n in_o like_a manner_n stilico_n the_o emperor_n father_n in_o law_n for_o honorius_n marry_v his_o daughter_n and_o the_o emperor_n chief_a counsellor_n presume_v to_o draw_v the_o kingdom_n to_o eucherius_n his_o son_n and_o stir_v up_o the_o uandale_n burgundian_n almain_n and_o diverso_fw-la other_o to_o invade_v the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n to_o the_o end_n that_o honorius_n be_v overcharge_v with_o the_o multitude_n of_o unsupportable_a business_n may_v permit_v stilic_n to_o set_v forward_o to_o the_o design_n of_o his_o own_o heart_n about_o this_o time_n rhadagisus_fw-la a_o s●…ythian_a accompany_v with_o a_o army_n of_o two_o hundred_o chron_n thousand_o goth_n come_v to_o italy_n and_o the_o help_n of_o valdinus_fw-la and_o sarus_n captain_n of_o the_o hun_n and_o goth_n be_v obtain_v rhadagisus_fw-la be_v sudden_o surprise_v himself_o be_v take_v &_o strangle_v many_o be_v slay_v the_o most_o part_n be_v sell_v whereupon_o follow_v incredible_a cheapness_n of_o servant_n so_o that_o flock_n of_o servant_n be_v sell_v for_o one_o piece_n of_o gold_n in_o italy_n the_o next_o great_a trouble_n come_v by_o alaricus_n king_n of_o the_o western_a goth_n who_o invade_v italy_n and_o camp_v about_o ravenna_n with_o who_o honorius_n enter_v into_o a_o capitulation_n and_o promise_v to_o he_o and_o his_o retinue_n a_o dwell_a place_n in_o france_n the_o goth_n caesarum_fw-la match_v towards_o their_o appoint_a dwelling_n place_n but_o stilico_n the_o emperor_n father_n in_o law_n follow_v after_o they_o and_o set_v upon_o they_o at_o unaware_o when_o they_o suspect_v none_o evil_a and_o slay_v a_o great_a number_n of_o they_o by_o this_o the_o emperor_n clear_o perceive_v the_o treason_n of_o stilico_n and_o cause_v he_o and_o his_o son_n to_o be_v slay_v but_o to_o his_o own_o great_a hurt_n he_o appoint_v no_o general_a commander_n of_o the_o army_n in_o his_o place_n alaricus_n and_o his_o army_n be_v enrage_v partly_o by_o their_o loss_n and_o partly_o by_o remembrance_n of_o the_o covenant_n make_v with_o they_o and_o incontinent_a violate_v therefore_o they_o turn_v back_o again_o &_o invade_v
italy_n with_o all_o their_o might_n and_o besiege_a rome_n two_o year_n and_o take_v it_o in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 410_o or_o as_o some_o reckone_n 412._o in_o the_o mid_n of_o burn_a slay_a 1_o rob_v &_o militare_fw-la outrage_n some_o favour_n be_v show_v by_o the_o express_a commandment_n of_o alaricus_n to_o such_o as_o flee_v to_o christian_a 9_o church_n for_o safety_n of_o their_o life_n alaricus_n lead_v his_o army_n from_o rome_n and_o be_v purpose_v to_o sail_v to_o africa_n there_o to_o settle_v his_o abode_n but_o be_v drive_v back_o with_o tempestuous_a wind_n he_o winter_v in_o consentia_n where_o he_o end_v his_o life_n alaricus_n in_o his_o life-time_n have_v give_v in_o marriage_n placidia_n the_o sister_n of_o honorius_n to_o ataulphus_n his_o near_a kinsman_n and_o ataulphus_n after_o the_o death_n of_o chronic_n alaricus_n reign_v over_o the_o goth_n the_o goth_n under_o the_o conduct_n of_o ataulphus_n retarn_v back_o again_o to_o rome_n placidia_n through_o her_o intercession_n purchase_v great_a well_o to_o the_o town_n of_o rome_n the_o goth_n abstain_v from_o burn_a and_o shed_v of_o blood_n and_o address_v themselves_o towards_o france_n and_o spain_n theodosius_n 2._o and_o valentinian_n 3_o after_o arcadius_n reign_v his_o son_n theodosius_n the_o second_o 42._o year_n his_o uncle_n honorius_n govern_v in_o the_o west_n after_o who_o death_n the_o whole_a government_n pertein_v to_o yheodosius_fw-la who_o associate_v unto_o himself_o valentinian_n the_o three_o the_o son_n of_o placidia_n his_o father_n sister_n theodosius_n in_o godliness_n be_v like_a unto_o his_o grandfather_n in_o collect_v a_o great_a labrarie_n of_o good_a book_n nothing_o inferior_a to_o ptolemaus_n philadelphus_n in_o collect_v in_o one_o short_a sum_n the_o law_n of_o king_n &_o prince_n he_o tread_v a_o path_n whereinto_o justinian_n walk_v follow_v theodosius_n example_n and_o benefit_v all_o man_n desirous_a of_o learning_n his_o house_n be_v like_a unto_o a_o sanctuary_n for_o exercise_n of_o read_v of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o devote_v 3_o prayer_n he_o be_v of_o a_o meek_a and_o tractable_a nature_n almost_o beyond_o measure_n his_o facility_n in_o subscribe_v unread_a letter_n be_v correct_v by_o the_o prudent_a advice_n of_o his_o sister_n pulcheria_n in_o these_o two_o emperor_n time_n the_o estate_n be_v mighty_o cross_v and_o trouble_v by_o stranger_n by_o the_o procurement_n of_o bonifacius_n deputy_n of_o africa_n the_o vandal_n under_o the_o conduct_n of_o gensericus_fw-la their_o king_n come_v into_o africa_n take_v the_o town_n of_o carthage_n &_o other_o principal_a town_n and_o settle_a their_o abode_n in_o that_o country_n valentinian_n 3_o emperor_n of_o the_o west_n be_v compel_v to_o bind_v up_o a_o covenant_n with_o the_o vandal_n and_o to_o assign_v unto_o they_o a_o limit_a bound_n in_o africa_n for_o their_o dwell_a place_n the_o vandal_n be_v partly_o pagan_n and_o partly_o arrian_n whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o true_a church_n in_o africa_n be_v persecute_v with_o no_o less_o inhumanity_n and_o barbarous_a cruelty_n by_o gensericus_fw-la king_n of_o the_o vandal_n than_o it_o be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o emperor_n dioclesiane_n attila_n king_n of_o the_o hun_n encumber_v the_o roman_a empire_n with_o great_a trouble_n theodosius_n emperor_n of_o the_o east_n buy_v peace_n with_o payment_n of_o a_o yearly_a tribute_n of_o gold_n to_o attila_n valentinian_n the_o three_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o aëtius_n his_o chief_a counsellor_n allure_v theodoricus_n king_n of_o the_o western_a goth_n to_o take_v his_o part_n the_o party_n fight_v in_o the_o field_n call_v catalaunici_n a_o great_a fight_n whereinto_o a_o hundred_o and_o fourscore_o thousand_o man_n be_v slay_v and_o theodoricus_n king_n of_o the_o goth_n in_o this_o battle_n lose_v his_o life_n attila_n be_v compel_v to_o flee_v thrasimundus_n the_o son_n of_o theodoricus_n be_v very_o willing_a to_o pursue_v attila_n for_o desire_n he_o have_v to_o revenge_v his_o father_n slaughter_n but_o he_o be_v stay_v by_o aëtius_n this_o counsel_n seem_v to_o be_v the_o occasion_n of_o his_o death_n for_o valentinian_n command_v to_o cut_v off_o aëtius_n attila_n find_v that_o the_o roman_a army_n be_v destitute_a of_o the_o conduct_n of_o so_o wise_a a_o governor_n as_o aëtius_n be_v he_o take_v courage_n again_o and_o in_o great_a rage_n set_v himself_o against_o italy_n take_v the_o town_n of_o aquileia_n ticinum_n and_o milan_n sack_v and_o ruin_v they_o and_o set_v himself_o direct_o against_o rome_n of_o intention_n to_o have_v use_v the_o like_a cruelty_n also_o against_o it_o but_o leo_n bishop_n of_o rome_n go_v forth_o and_o with_o gentle_a word_n so_o mitigate_v his_o mind_n that_o he_o leave_v siege_v of_o the_o town_n of_o rome_n soon_o after_o this_o attila_n die_v the_o terror_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o whip_n wherewith_o god_n scourge_v many_o nation_n valentinian_n the_o third_o after_o he_o have_v reign_v in_o whole_a 30._o year_n be_v cut_v off_o for_o the_o slaughter_n of_o aetius_n maximus_n usurp_v the_o kingdom_n and_o violent_o take_v unto_o himself_o endoxia_fw-la the_o relict_n of_o valentinian_n but_o she_o be_v relieve_v again_o by_o gensericus_fw-la king_n of_o vandal_n who_o lead_v a_o army_n to_o rome_n and_o spoil_v the_o town_n relieve_v eudoxia_n and_o carry_v she_o and_o her_o daughter_n to_o africa_n and_o give_v honoricus_n his_o son_n in_o marriage_n unto_o her_o elder_a daughter_n maximus_n be_v cut_v in_o piece_n by_o the_o people_n and_o his_o body_n be_v cast_v into_o tiber_n from_o this_o time_n forth_o the_o empire_n utter_o decay_v in_o the_o west_n until_o the_o day_n of_o carolus_n magnus_n 16_o so_o that_o auitus_n richimex_fw-la maioranus_n severus_n anthemius_n olybrius_n glycerius_n nepos_n orestes_n and_o his_o son_n augustulus_n they_o continue_v so_o short_a time_n and_o govern_v so_o unprosperous_o that_o their_o name_n may_v be_v leave_v out_o of_o the_o roll_n of_o emperor_n now_o to_o return_v again_o to_o theodosius_n emperor_n in_o the_o east_n a_o king_n belove_v of_o god_n in_o so_o much_o that_o by_o prayer_n he_o obtain_v of_o god_n a_o wonderful_a deliverance_n to_o ardaburius_n captain_n of_o his_o army_n when_o his_o uncle_n have_v end_v his_o life_n ardaburius_n be_v send_v against_o a_o tyrant_n john_n who_o do_v usurp_v the_o kingdom_n in_o the_o west_n the_o ship_n whereinto_o ardaburius_n sail_v by_o tempest_n of_o weather_n be_v drive_v to_o ravenna_n where_o the_o tyrant_n john_n take_v he_o prisoner_n 23_o aspar_n the_o captain_n son_n be_v conduct_v by_o a_o angel_n of_o god_n as_o socrates_n writt_v enter_v into_o ravenna_n by_o the_o passage_n of_o the_o loch_n which_o be_v never_o find_v dry_v up_o before_o that_o time_n the_o port_n of_o the_o town_n be_v patent_n so_o that_o aspar_n and_o his_o army_n enter_v into_o the_o town_n slay_v the_o tyrant_n john_n and_o relieve_v ardaburius_n his_o father_n this_o miraculous_a deliverance_n be_v think_v to_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o effectual_a prayer_n of_o the_o godly_a emperor_n his_o death_n be_v procure_v by_o a_o fall_n from_o his_o horse_n after_o which_o he_o be_v disease_v and_o die_v a_o emperor_n worthy_a of_o everlasting_a remembrance_n martianus_n martianus_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o pulcheria_n the_o sister_n of_o theodosius_n be_v advance_v to_o the_o kingdom_n with_o who_o valentinian_n the_o third_o of_o who_o i_o have_v already_o speak_v reign_v 4._o year_n martianus_n albeit_o he_o obtain_v the_o government_n m_o in_o a_o time_n most_o troublesome_a when_o the_o goth_n vandal_n hun_n and_o herulis_n have_v disquiet_v the_o estate_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n out_o of_o measure_n yet_o by_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n the_o short_a time_n of_o his_o government_n be_v peaceable_a for_o he_o reign_v not_o full_o 8_o 7._o year_n and_o he_o leave_v behind_o he_o great_a grief_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o people_n because_o a_o government_n so_o good_a and_o godly_a endure_v so_o short_a time_n anent_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n assemble_v by_o he_o it_o be_v to_o be_v refer_v unto_o the_o own_o place_n leo._n after_o martianus_n succeed_v leo_n and_o govern_v 17._o year_n he_o be_v godly_a and_o peaceable_a not_o unlike_a to_o martianus_n his_o predecessor_n he_o interpon_v his_o authority_n to_o suppress_v those_o who_o proud_o despise_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o obstinate_o maintain_v the_o heresy_n of_o eutyches_n notwithstanding_o the_o madness_n and_o rage_n of_o eutychian_n heretic_n begin_v in_o his_o time_n immediate_o after_o the_o report_n of_o the_o death_n of_o martianus_n procerius_fw-la b._n of_o alexandria_n be_v cruel_o slay_v by_o they_o in_o the_o church_n 8_o harl_v through_o the_o street_n and_o with_o beastly_a cruelty_n they_o chew_v the_o entrails_n of_o his_o body_n have_v before_o ordain_v
castiganda_fw-la in_fw-la morte_fw-la corporis_fw-la resolvenda_fw-la in_fw-la corporis_fw-la resurrectione_n &_o morte_fw-la mortis_fw-la sananda_fw-la that_o be_v in_o the_o body_n of_o death_n it_o be_v to_o be_v chastise_v in_o the_o death_n of_o the_o body_n it_o be_v to_o be_v resolve_v and_o in_o the_o resurrection_n and_o in_o the_o death_n of_o death_n it_o be_v to_o be_v heal_v therefore_o let_v we_o not_o despare_v because_o we_o be_v heavy_o loadn_v with_o sin_n both_o original_a and_o actual_a bu●…let_v we_o have_v esperance_fw-fr of_o heal_a because_o we_o have_v a_o gracious_a and_o a_o love_a physician_n he_o restore_v peter_n with_o a_o favourable_a look_n he_o save_v one_o of_o the_o crucify_a thief_n with_o a_o merciful_a remembrance_n he_o cure_v the_o woman_n that_o be_v disease_v with_o a_o bloody_a issue_n with_o one_o touch_v the_o centurion_n servant_n with_o speak_v one_o word_n now_o he_o who_o be_v mighty_a to_o save_v lose_v we_o in_o his_o own_o appoint_a time_n from_o all_o the_o band_n of_o our_o manifold_a sin_n to_o who_o be_v praise_n and_o glory_n for_o ever_o amen_o a_o treatise_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n only_o the_o defender_n of_o man_n freewill_n in_o all_o age_n have_v be_v also_o enemy_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n and_o therefore_o this_o treatise_n do_v adhere_v to_o the_o form●…r_n with_o a_o pertinent_a coherence_n the_o order_n i_o mind_n to_o follow_v by_o the_o lord_n assistance_n in_o this_o question_n whether_o we_o be_v justify_v only_o by_o faith_n or_o partly_o by_o faith_n and_o partly_o by_o work_n be_v this_o first_o short_o to_o entreat_v a_o place_n of_o scripture_n whereinto_o this_o question_n be_v clear_o discuss_v next_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o difference_n of_o justification_n and_o sanctification_n and_o of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n and_o three_o to_o declare_v that_o we_o can_v not_o be_v save_v neither_o by_o our_o own_o merit_n nor_o by_o the_o merit_n of_o other_o man_n but_o only_o by_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ._n the_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o i_o shall_v lay_v down_o for_o a_o ground_n be_v this_o behold_v he_o that_o lif●…eth_v up_o himself_o his_o mind_n be_v not_o upright_o in_o 4._o he_o but_z the_o inst_n shall_v live_v by_o faith_n the_o purpose_n of_o the_o prophet_n in_o this_o verse_n be_v to_o comfort_v god_n people_n who_o be_v to_o be_v transport_v captive_n and_o prisoner_n to_o babylon_n the_o prophet_n will_v exhort_v they_o with_o patient_a expectation_n to_o wait_v upon_o their_o promise_a deliverance_n whereby_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v in_o better_a estate_n than_o the_o babylonian_n their_o enemy_n for_o the_o babylonian_n rejoice_v in_o their_o own_o strength_n sacrifice_v unto_o their_o own_o net_n &_o lean_v upon_o a_o staff_n that_o can_v not_o hold_v they_o up_o but_o god_n people_n albeit_o afflict_v for_o a_o time_n if_o by_o faith_n they_o shall_v take_v hold_n of_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n they_o shall_v see_v in_o god_n appoint_a time_n a_o comfortableissue_n of_o all_o their_o trouble_n the_o prophet_n in_o the_o word_n behold_v will_v reduce_v they_o to_o a_o consideration_n of_o thing_n they_o have_v see_v with_o their_o eye_n and_o hear_v with_o their_o ear_n to_o wit_n that_o their_o father_n who_o trust_v more_o in_o the_o horse_n of_o egypt_n than_o in_o the_o quiet_a rest_n of_o the_o promise_n 3._o of_o god_n they_o find_v the_o help_n of_o egypt_n to_o be_v their_o confufion_n this_o one_o example_n which_o they_o see_v with_o their_o own_o eye_n may_v have_v teach_v they_o to_o lean_v at_o all_o time_n upon_o the_o staff_n of_o god_n and_o to_o forsake_v all_o vain_a confidence_n either_o in_o themselves_o or_o other_o in_o the_o next_o word_n he_o who_o be_v puf●…_n up_o in_o himself_o the_o prophet_n express_o point_v out_o the_o person_n of_o who_o he_o be_v speak_v namely_o of_o they_o who_o lean_v not_o unto_o their_o own_o strength_n 4●…_n or_o wisdom_n true_o god_n people_n shall_v be_v like_a unto_o mount_n zion_n fair_a in_o situation_n and_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n yet_o not_o rejoice_v in_o itself_o but_o in_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n who_o please_v to_o dwell_v in_o the_o palace_n thereof_o who_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o it_o in_o the_o holy_a mountain_n and_o who_o love_v the_o gate_n of_o zion_n more_o 2_o than_o all_o the_o habitation_n of_o jacob_n let_v caucasus_n olympus_n parnassus_n and_o atlas_n rejoice_v in_o their_o bigness_n and_o height_n but_o zion_n rejoice_v in_o this_o that_o it_o be_v the_o mountain_n which_o god_n have_v choose_v to_o be_v the_o place_n whereupon_o his_o holy_a sanctuary_n shall_v be_v build_v so_o do_v the_o elect_a of_o god_n rejoice_v in_o the_o lord_n goodness_n but_o other_o be_v lift_v up_o in_o themselves_o as_o the_o prophet_n speak_v in_o the_o word_n follow_v his_o heart_n be_v not_o upright_o in_o he_o the_o prophet_n declare_v the_o inconvenience_n that_o follow_v upon_o the_o lean_v to_o our_o own_o strength_n to_o wit_n we_o be_v utter_o disappoint_v of_o our_o expectation_n and_o whereas_o we_o look_v for_o rest_n &_o tranquillity_n to_o our_o conscience_n the_o contrare_fw-la fall_v out_o that_o we_o be_v like_a unto_o man_n out_o of_o their_o right_a wit_n waver_v mind_v &_o so_o toss_v with_o doubt_v that_o they_o know_v not_o whar_n course_n to_o take_v because_o their_o mind_n be_v not_o solid_o settle_v nor_o upright_o within_o they_o this_o be_v the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n punish_v the_o contempt_n of_o that_o quiet_a and_o peaceable_a harbery_n that_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o compassion_n of_o god_n in_o his_o son_n christ_n jesus_n they_o who_o despise_v this_o sure_a harbery_n be_v worthy_a to_o be_v toss_v with_o mighty_a storm_n and_o to_o be_v in_o hazard_n and_o jeopardy_n of_o their_o life_n as_o the_o centurion_n be_v who_o despise_v 27._o the_o wholesome_a counsel_n of_o paul_n at_o candie_n follow_v in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n but_o the_o just_a man_n shall_v live_v by_o faith_n like_a as_o they_o who_o lean_a upon_o their_o own_o strength_n can_v find_v no_o tranquillity_n and_o rest_n unto_o their_o conscience_n even_o so_o on_o the_o other_o part_n these_o who_o by_o constant_a faith_n lean_a upon_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n they_o shall_v find_v rest_n to_o their_o soul_n but_o the_o prophet_n choose_v rather_o to_o say_v that_o the_o just_a man_n shall_v live_v by_o faith_n to_o declare_v that_o by_o lean_v to_o the_o sweet_a promise_n of_o god_n word_n we_o snall_n not_o only_o find_v rest_n unto_o our_o soul_n but_o also_o spiritual_a life_n which_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o true_a rest_n and_o tranquillite_fw-la so_o be_v we_o in_o this_o case_n not_o unlike_a unto_o 9_o saul_n who_o in_o seek_v his_o father_n ass_n find_v a_o kingdom_n and_o we_o in_o seek_v of_o rest_n we_o have_v find_v life_n the_o true_a fountain_n of_o our_o rest_n the_o last_o word_n of_o the_o verse_n by_o his_o oene_a faith_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v for_o by_o they_o we_o perceive_v that_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n must_v be_v particular_o apply_v to_o our_o soul_n and_o that_o we_o must_v not_o be_v waver_v and_o doubtsome_a in_o our_o faith_n but_o firm_a and_o stable_a forasmuch_o as_o thing_n necessary_a to_o the_o maintenance_n of_o this_o present_a life_n have_v also_o need_v to_o be_v particular_o apply_v such_o as_o food_n raiment_n and_o medicine_n even_o so_o in_o thing_n necessary_a unto_o eternal_a life_n our_o soul_n have_v great_a need_n of_o particular_a application_n of_o comfort_n we_o must_v have_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o lamb_n sprinkle_v upon_o the_o post_n of_o our_o own_o house_n else_o can_v 12_o we_o not_o be_v save_v from_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o destroy_a angel_n we_o must_v also_o receive_v the_o angel_n of_o god_n under_o our_o own_o roof_n with_o lot_n else_o can_v we_o not_o be_v save_v from_o the_o flame_n of_o fire_n which_o destroy_v ungodly_a city_n and_o final_o we_o must_v 19_o be_v like_a unto_o the_o vessel_n of_o the_o lord_n tabernacle_n which_o be_v all_o particular_o anoint_v with_o holy_a oil_n in_o time_n of_o the_o dedication_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n else_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v count_v holy_a 40._o vessel_n in_o the_o house_n of_o our_o god._n but_o because_o the_o apostle_n baul_n cit_v this_o place_n of_o scripture_n to_o confirm_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v only_o by_o faith_n consider_v how_o firm_a and_o suit_v this_o argument_n stand_v 11._o we_o be_v justify_v by_o that_o same_o thing_n whereby_o our_o soul_n do_v live_v but_o so_o it_o be_v that_o our_o soul_n do_v only_o live_v by_o faith_n therefore_o we_o
that_o same_o church_n which_o he_o will_v have_v harm_v and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o permutation_n aforesaid_a shall_v stand_v firm_a and_o stable_a he_o who_o have_v augment_v church-rente_n either_o by_o confer_v or_o acquire_v some_o augmentation_n unto_o it_o have_v some_o liberty_n 68_o to_o set_v church-seruante_n at_o liberty_n provide_v always_o they_o abide_v under_o the_o patrociny_n of_o the_o church_n because_o the_o patronage_n of_o the_o church_n never_o die_v let_v those_o servant_n who_o the_o church_n have_v set_v at_o liberty_n and_o their_o posterity_n 71._o be_v obedient_a unto_o the_o church_n and_o depend_v upon_o their_o patrociny_n if_o they_o be_v unthankful_a let_v their_o liberty_n be_v forfeit_n and_o let_v the_o church_n defend_v they_o from_o all_o insolency_n and_o wrong_n servant_n who_o be_v set_v at_o so_o full_a liberty_n that_o their_o patroness_n have_v keep_v no_o band_n of_o subjection_n over_o their_o head_n if_o they_o be_v unspotted_a 73_o and_o unreprovable_a they_o may_v be_v promote_v to_o ecclesiastical_a office_n but_o it_o be_v unseemelie_a that_o any_o man_n shall_v be_v receive_v into_o a_o spiritual_a office_n who_o be_v bind_v unto_o the_o servile_a subjection_n of_o a_o earthly_a master_n in_o end_n earnest_a supplication_n be_v ordain_v to_o be_v make_v to_o 74_o god_n for_o preservation_n of_o king_n sisenandus_n and_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o goth_n and_o many_o anathem_n be_v pronounce_v against_o they_o who_o shall_v presume_v to_o violate_v the_o oath_n of_o alledgeance_n make_v to_o the_o king_n in_o end_v the_o act_n of_o this_o council_n be_v subscribe_v by_o isidorus_n bishop_n of_o hispal●…_n and_o other_o seventie_o bishop_n in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o chintilla_fw-la king_n of_o the_o goth_n and_o about_o the_o time_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o emperor_n heracleon_n conveened_a toledo_n with_o eugenius_n bishop_n of_o toledo_n other_o twenty_o bishop_n in_o this_o council_n nothing_o be_v entreat_v except_o a_o mandate_n be_v give_v concern_v the_o yearly_a litany_n that_o shall_v be_v make_v three_o day_n immediate_o follow_v the_o ides_n of_o december_n and_o if_o the_o lord_n day_n interueened_a than_o these_o 3._o day_n litany_n shall_v be_v differ_v until_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o next_z week_n in_o these_o 3._o day_n pardon_v for_o sin_n shall_v be_v humble_o beg_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n with_o tear_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o ordinance_n of_o this_o council_n appoint_v supplication_n to_o be_v make_v to_o god_n for_o preservation_n of_o the_o king_n and_o his_o child_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v accurse_v who_o dare_v presume_v to_o suit_n the_o kingly_a authority_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a country_n of_o spain_n and_o the_o nobility_n of_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o goth_n and_o that_o no_o man_n shall_v rail_v upon_o the_o king_n or_o lie_v in_o wait_n for_o his_o life_n in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 652._o or_o as_o other_o reckon_v 650._o pope_n martinus_n gather_v a_o council_n at_o rome_n of_o more_o than_o 100_o martin_n bishop_n the_o error_n of_o the_o monothelite_n obstinate_o defend_v by_o paulus_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n be_v the_o occasion_n of_o this_o council_n together_o with_o the_o impious_a edict_n of_o the_o emperor_n constans_n set_v out_o in_o favour_n of_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o monothelite_n in_o this_o council_n over_o and_o beside_o a_o ample_a confession_n of_o faith_n many_o decree_n and_o constitution_n be_v make_v all_o tend_v to_o damn_v those_o who_o deny_v either_o the_o trinity_n or_o the_o divine_a unity_n in_o the_o divine_a nature_n or_o the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o second_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o his_o suffering_n in_o the_o flesh_n or_o the_o perpetual_a virginity_n of_o the_o lord_n mother_n or_o the_o two_o nativity_n of_o christ_n one_o before_o all_o time_n and_o another_o in_o time_n by_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n or_o the_o conformity_n of_o christ_n to_o we_o in_o all_o thing_n sin_n except_v or_o the_o distinction_n of_o the_o two_o nature_n after_o the_o ineffable_a unity_n or_o the_o distinction_n of_o will_n and_o operation_n in_o christ._n in_o like_a manner_n all_o be_v damn_v who_o make_v opposition_n to_o the_o five_o precede_a general_a counsel_n in_o particular_a theodorus_n of_o pharatrita_n cyrus_n of_o alexandria_n sergius_n pyrrhus_n and_o paulus_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n be_v damn_v as_o patroness_n and_o obstinate_a defender_n of_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o monothelite_n there_o be_v more_o fr●…quent_a mention_n of_o father_n than_o of_o scripture_n in_o this_o counc●…ll_n a_o perilous_a example_n to_o the_o posterity_n in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 653._o and_o in_o the_o three_o year_n of_o chintill●…_n king_n of_o goth_n in_o spain_n the_o 6._o council_n of_o toledo_n be_v assemble_v toledo_n of_o 52._o bishop_n eugenius_n b._n of_o toledo_n be_v precedent_n the_o occasion_n seem_v to_o have_v be_v the_o renovation_n of_o old_a heresy_n &_o contradiction_n to_o precede_a counsel_n after_o a_o confession_n of_o the_o faith_n litany_n be_v ordain_v to_o be_v say_v as_o be_v appoint_v year_o 2_o for_o preservation_n of_o the_o king_n it_o be_v ordain_v by_o the_o advis●…_n of_o the_o council_n with_o consent_n of_o the_o king_n &_o his_o noble_n that_o no_o man_n shall_v be_v tolerate_v to_o 3_o dwell_v in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o spain_n who_o do_v not_o profess_v the_o true_a catholic_a faith_n &_o that_o king_n in_o all_o time_n to_o come_v before_o they_o be_v place_v in_o their_o royal_a seat_n shall_v be_v bind_v by_o the_o obligation_n of_o a_o solemn_a ☞_o oath_n to_o interpone_v their_o authority_n that_o this_o act_n may_v be_v obey_v otherwise_o let_v the_o king_n refuse_v to_o put_v this_o act_n in_o execution_n be_v count_v accurse_v and_o be_v a_o faggot_n of_o the_o flame_n of_o everlasting_a fire_n what_o fe●…dinandus_n king_n of_o spain_n do_v in_o drive_v out_o of_o his_o dominion_n the_o jew_n and_o the_o saracene_n some_o allege_v that_o it_o be_v do_v upon_o the_o ground_n of_o this_o act_n but_o now_o it_o be_v not_o a_o fit_a time_n to_o examine_v that_o question_n no_o man_n shall_v presume_v by_o simony_n or_o largition_n of_o money_n to_o attain_v to_o ecclesiastical_a office_n 4_o if_o any_o of_o the_o clergy_n obtain_v a_o pension_n out_o of_o the_o church_n rent_n let_v he_o possess_v it_o under_o the_o title_n of_o praecaria_n lest_o by_o long_a 5_o possession_n the_o church_n rent_n be_v diminish_v if_o any_o person_n be_v clothe_v with_o a_o religious_a habit_n which_o he_o have_v voluntary_o accept_v if_o afterward_o he_o forsake_v it_o let_v he_o be_v 6_o excommunicate_v if_o he_o return_v not_o again_o unto_o his_o order_n the_o seven_o canon_n be_v a_o renew_n of_o the_o 54._o canon_n of_o the_o 4._o council_n of_o toledo_n 7_o a_o marry_a man_n who_o vow_v chastity_n in_o time_n of_o sickness_n if_o he_o recover_v health_n and_o have_v not_o the_o gift_n of_o continency_n let_v he_o 8_o cohabite_v again_o with_o his_o wife_n but_o if_o she_o die_v he_o be_v debar_v from_o the_o second_o marriage_n which_o notwithstanding_o be_v permit_v to_o the_o wife_n if_o she_o have_v not_o vow_v this_o canon_n be_v not_o set_v down_o ☞_o by_o precept_n and_o commandment_n but_o permissive_o through_o indulgence_n and_o a_o consideration_n of_o humane_a infirmity_n servant_n who_o the_o church_n have_v set_v at_o liberty_n when_o one_o prelate_n die_v and_o another_o succeed_v they_o be_v bind_v to_o renew_v 9_o the_o charter_n of_o their_o land_n which_o they_o possess_v else_o their_o charter_n shall_v be_v void_a and_o of_o none_o effect_n if_o they_o be_v not_o renew_v within_o the_o space_n of_o a_o year_n next_o after_o the_o election_n of_o the_o new_a prelate_n the_o child_n of_o they_o who_o the_o church_n have_v set_v at_o liberty_n if_o their_o parent_n bring_v they_o up_o in_o learning_n they_o shall_v be_v bring_v 10_o up_o in_o that_o same_o church_n from_o which_o their_o liberty_n do_v arise_v and_o shall_v serve_v the_o bishop_n of_o that_o church_n always_o without_o prejudice_n of_o their_o liberty_n let_v no_o man_n upon_o occasion_n of_o a_o accusation_n be_v punish_v unless_o his_o accuser_n be_v present_v and_o incase_o he_o be_v a_o vile_a and_o 11_o infamous_a person_n let_v no_o sentence_n be_v give_v out_o upon_o the_o ground_n of_o such_o accusation_n except_o into_o a_o action_n of_o treason_n against_o the_o life_n of_o the_o king_n he_o who_o have_v commit_v heinous_a offence_n and_o fear_v punishment_n flee_v to_o the_o enemy_n of_o his_o country_n for_o refuge_n let_v 12_o he_o be_v excommunicate_v let_v young_a man_n honour_v they_o who_o be_v in_o great_a credit_n and_o 13_o favour_n with_o prince_n and_o
and_o say_v she_o have_v commit_v none_o iniquity_n ambition_n so_o blind_v her_o eye_n that_o unconstancy_n be_v count_v no_o fault_n and_o take_v deep_a root_n in_o her_o heart_n hide_v from_o the_o eye_n of_o her_o mind_n the_o sight_n of_o heaven_n and_o all_o heavenly_a virtue_n such_o as_o humility_n modesty_n constancy_n and_o uprightness_n of_o a_o siable_a and_o unwavering_a heart_n the_o pre-eminence_n that_o god_n licenciate_v to_o be_v seek_v over_o brethren_n be_v like_a to_o the_o pre-eminence_n of_o moses_n over_o the_o elder_n he_o ascend_v high_a upon_o the_o mountain_n of_o god_n than_o they_o do_v and_o when_o he_o come_v down_o again_o from_o the_o mountain_n of_o god_n his_o face_n shine_v with_o great_a splendour_n of_o celestial_a glory_n than_o 29_o the_o face_n of_o other_o do_v will_v god_n pastor_n can_v strive_v to_o attain_v to_o such_o pre-eminence_n for_o the_o strive_n for_o prerogative_n of_o place_n have_v breed_v many_o unnecessary_a and_o unfruitful_a contention_n reditum_fw-la in_o the_o church_n as_o a_o ancient_a father_n have_v well_o mark_v this_o supremacy_n aforesaid_a so_o unhonest_o seek_v be_v use_v tyrannous_o &_o unrighteous_o pope_n bonifacius_n the_o four_o dedicate_v the_o temple_n call_v pantheon_n wherein_o all_o the_o gentile_a god_n be_v worship_v this_o temple_n i_o say_v he_o dedicate_v to_o the_o virgin_n marie_n and_o to_o all_o the_o martyr_n rather_o change_v than_o correct_v the_o vile_a abomination_n of_o idolatry_n honorius_n the_o first_o in_o the_o six_o general_a council_n be_v find_v to_o have_v be_v a_o eutychian_n heretic_n the_o pope_n martinus_n the_o first_o and_o eugenius_n the_o first_o vitalianus_n and_o adeodatus_n be_v so_o puff_v up_o in_o pride_n that_o they_o count_v the_o bishop_n of_o r●…uenna_n heretic_n only_o for_o this_o because_o they_o receive_v not_o their_o ordination_n from_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n &_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o their_o authority_n and_o this_o heresy_n they_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d pope_n sergius_n 1._o obstinate_o refuse_v to_o subscribe_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o six_o general_a council_n partly_o because_o in_o it_o the_o doctrine_n and_o law_n of_o prohibition_n of_o marriage_n to_o man_n in_o spiritual_a function_n be_v damn_v and_o partly_o also_o because_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n be_v equal_v in_o honour_n with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n constantinus_n the_o first_o and_o gregorius_n the_o second_o be_v the_o first_o open_a and_o avow_a traitor_n against_o the_o emperor_n the_o one_o of_o they_o raze_v the_o name_n of_o the_o emperor_n philippic●…s_n out_o of_o charter_n the_o other_o assoil_v the_o subject_n of_o italy_n from_o the_o oath_n of_o all_o edgeance_n to_o the_o emperor_n leo_n isaurus_n because_o these_o two_o emperor_n d●…tested_v the_o worship_v of_o image_n what_o villainy_n be_v in_o pope_n stephanus_n the_o third_o who_o persuade_v carolus_n magnus_n king_n of_o france_n to_o repudiate_v his_o wife_n bertha_n the_o daughter_n of_o desiderius_n king_n of_o lombardis_n abuse_n in_o most_o impudent_a manner_n the_o word_n of_o holy_a scripture_n what_o fellowship_n have_v righteousness_n with_o unrighteousness_n and_o what_o communion_n have_v light_a with_o darkness_n 2._o cori●…t_fw-la chap._n 6._o vers_fw-la 14._o in_o that_o place_n the_o apostle_n be_v give_v counsel_n to_o christian_n who_o be_v dispose_v to_o marry_v not_o to_o couple_v themselves_o in_o matrimonial_a band_n with_o infideles_fw-la but_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o they_o who_o be_v already_o marry_v even_o with_o infideles_fw-la be_v this_o if_o any_o brother_n have_v a_o wife_n that_o believe_v not_o if_o she_o be_v content_a to_o dwell_v with_o he_o let_v he_o not_o for_o sake_n she_o 1._o cor._n 7._o 12._o so_o that_o albeit_o bertha_n the_o daughter_n of_o desiderius_n have_v be_v a_o infidel_n she_o be_v willing_a to_o cohabite_v with_o her_o husband_n there_o be_v no_o reason_n to_o repudiate_v she_o but_o now_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v become_v wise_a than_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n and_o they_o bid_v repudiat_fw-la the_o wife_n with_o who_o the_o apostle_n paul_n in_o express_a word_n bid_v a_o christian_a man_n cohabite_v it_o be_v more_o intolerable_a that_o suphanus_fw-la the_o three_o call_v bertha_n a_o infidel_n be_v she_o not_o baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o her_o father_n desiderius_n &_o before_o he_o aistulphus_n partaker_n of_o the_o lord_n holy_a sacrament_n be_v not_o rachis_n the_o brother_n of_o aislulphus_fw-la so_o devout_a according_a to_o the_o superstitious_a form_n at_o that_o time_n commend_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o he_o forsake_v his_o kingdom_n and_o enter_v into_o a_o monastery_n there_o to_o lead_v his_o life_n but_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v become_v so_o prodigal_a of_o their_o reproachful_a speech_n that_o all_o person_n be_v count_v infideles_fw-la who_o follow_v not_o absolute_o all_o the_o conceit_n of_o their_o changeable_a mind_n pope_n adrian_n the_o first_o with_o advice_n of_o a_o great_a council_n ordain_v that_o no_o man_n shall_v be_v consecrate_v bishop_n of_o rome_n before_o he_o have_v receive_v investment_n by_o staff_n and_o ring_n by_o the_o emperor_n but_o gregorius_n 7._o by_o the_o contrary_a curse_v they_o who_o receive_v investment_n from_o the_o emperor_n anno_fw-la 1073._o these_o two_o pope_n speak_v contradictory_n thing_n yet_o they_o must_v be_v count_v holy_a father_n who_o can_v err_v pope_n leo_n the_o three_o take_v upon_o he_o boldness_n to_o change_v the_o empire_n and_o to_o proclaim_v charles_n the_o great_a king_n of_o france_z to_o be_v emperor_n in_o the_o west_n and_o baronius_n the_o most_o in●…pt_a expounder_n of_o scripture_n of_o any_o learned_a man_n of_o late_a day_n defend_v this_o do_v of_o l●…o_n by_o a_o place_n of_o scripture_n the_o most_o high_a bear_v rule_v 8._o over_o the_o kingdom_n of_o man_n and_o give_v it_o to_o who_o he_o will_v dan._n 4._o 22._o daniel_n in_o that_o place_n speak_v of_o the_o eternal_a god_n who_o indeed_o be_v most_o high_a and_o give_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n to_o who_o he_o please_v but_o baronius_n apply_v this_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o if_o he_o be_v most_o high_a and_o have_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n at_o his_o own_o dispensation_n to_o give_v they_o to_o who_o he_o please_v so_o say_v the_o devil_n of_o himself_o luke_o 4._o 6._o but_o he_o lie_v for_o he_o have_v no_o such_o power_n and_o baronius_n attribute_v this_o power_n unto_o the_o pope_n lie_v as_o impudent_o as_o the_o devil_n do_v sergius_fw-la the_o second_o with_o his_o brother_n benedictus_n for_o gain_v vanta_n e_o unto_o themselves_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o sell_v bishopricke_n and_o to_o prefer_v man_n to_o spiritual_a office_n not_o for_o the_o worthiness_n of_o their_o gift_n but_o for_o the_o weight_n of_o their_o number_a money_n and_o so_o the_o chair_n of_o rome_n be_v filthilie_o spot_v with_o simonic_a yea_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o prid●…_n and_o simonicall_a avarice_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n brangle_v their_o late_a usurp_a authority_n so_o that_o augvibertus_n bishop_n of_o milan_n with_o allowance_n of_o many_o bishop_n of_o italy_n disclaim_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n iniqu_n of_o rome_n and_o with_o great_a difficulty_n after_o the_o issue_n of_o two_o hundred_o year_n be_v the_o chair_n of_o milan_n reduce_v again_o to_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o day_n of_o pope_n stephanus_n the_o nine_o it_o grieve_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o they_o be_v bind_v by_o the_o constitution_n of_o adrian_n the_o first_o to_o have_v the_o allowance_n of_o the_o emperor_n to_o their_o election_n and_o therefore_o by_o degree_n they_o endeavour_v to_o shake_v off_o that_o yoke_n of_o bondage_n stephanus_n the_o four_o be_v elect_v without_o the_o foreknowledge_n of_o ludovicus_n '_o pius_n but_o he_o pacify_v the_o emperor_n wrath_n by_o his_o come_n to_o france_z pascalis_fw-la the_o first_o in_o like_a manner_n be_v choose_v bishop_n of_o rome_n without_o the_o foreknowledge_n of_o the_o emperor_n nevertheless_o by_o his_o letter_n send_v to_o the_o emperor_n ludovicus_n he_o excuse_v himself_o and_o ratify_v the_o constitution_n of_o adrian_n in_o like_a manner_n leo_n the_o four_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o his_o predecessor_n be_v admit_v without_o the_o foreknowledge_n of_o lotharius_n he_o likewise_o excuse_v himself_o to_o the_o emperor_n son_n ludovicus_n pretend_v that_o the_o sudden_a incursion_n of_o the_o saracene_n be_v the_o cause_n move_v the_o people_n to_o precipitate_v his_o election_n and_o hinder_v himself_o to_o make_v due_a advertisement_n to_o the_o emperor_n lotharius_n in_o who_o time_n he_o be_v elect_v but_o the_o issue_n after_o follow_v declare_v that_o all_o these_o excuse_n
be_v clear_o witness_v in_o another_o place_n in_o those_o word_n now_o the_o spirit_n speak_v evident_o that_o in_o the_o latter_a time_n some_o shall_v depart_v from_o the_o faith_n etc._n etc._n defection_n in_o manner_n be_v so_o usual_a a_o thing_n that_o 1_o where_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v preach_v in_o most_o powerful_a manner_n there_o also_o corruption_n in_o manner_n do_v abound_v argue_v the_o evil_a inclination_n of_o our_o nature_n which_o take_v occasion_n by_o the_o commandment_n and_o work_v in_o we_o all_o kind_n of_o concupiscence_n so_o that_o the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n be_v like_a unto_o a_o gutter_n of_o water_n 8_o the_o passage_n whereof_o be_v hinder_v it_o gorge_v swell_v and_o set_v forward_o its_o own_o accustom_a way_n more_o impetuouslie_o than_o ever_o it_o do_v before_o but_o the_o apostle_n be_v speak_v of_o a_o deep_a mystery_n and_o of_o a_o thing_n more_o rare_o contingent_a to_o wit_n of_o a_o apostasy_n from_o the_o faith_n this_o be_v the_o sharp_a of_o all_o punishment_n which_o god_n inflict_v upon_o mankind_n for_o the_o contempt_n of_o his_o truth_n to_o cast_v off_o a_o people_n into_o a_o reprobate_a mind_n whether_o we_o look_v to_o the_o action_n of_o god_n who_o reject_v or_o to_o the_o misery_n of_o they_o who_o be_v reject_v the_o action_n of_o god_n who_o reject_v be_v set_v down_o by_o the_o prophet_n zacharie_n the_o lord_n will_v not_o feed_v that_o people_n yea_o he_o will_v break_v his_o shepherd_n staff_n to_o wit_n the_o staff_n call_v 11_o beautiful_a &_o the_o staff_n call_v band_n the_o misery_n of_o they_o who_o be_v reject_v be_v set_v down_o by_o the_o prophet_n esai_n in_o these_o word_n you_o shall_v hear_v indeed_o but_o you_o shall_v not_o understand_v you_o shall_v plain_o 10_o see_v and_o not_o perceive_v make_v the_o heart_n of_o this_o people_n fat_a etc._n etc._n so_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v when_o this_o heavy_a judgement_n be_v inflict_v there_o be_v no_o comfort_n to_o be_v find_v neither_o in_o heaven_n above_o nor_o in_o the_o earth_n beneath_o when_o we_o look_v up_o unto_o god_n he_o will_v feed_v we_o no_o long_o when_o we_o look_v down_o to_o ourselves_o we_o receive_v no_o comfort_n by_o the_o external_a ministry_n of_o the_o word_n it_o be_v to_o we_o the_o savour_n of_o death_n yea_o and_o we_o be_v in_o so_o desolate_a a_o case_n as_o the_o prophet_n speak_v that_o that_o die_v let_v it_o die_v and_o that_o that_o perish_v let_v it_o perish_v and_o let_v the_o remnant_n every_o one_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o another_o of_o 9_o this_o unsupportable_a and_o remediless_a evil_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o defection_n from_o the_o faith_n neither_o can_v the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n of_o old_a nor_o the_o visible_a church_n of_o late_a ever_o be_v content_a patient_o to_o hear_v because_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o everlasting_a covenant_n of_o god_n make_v with_o abraham_n and_o his_o seed_n nevertheless_o that_o same_o bless_a mouth_n which_o make_v the_o covenant_n with_o abraham_n and_o his_o seed_n foretell_v also_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v cast_v off_o into_o a_o reprobate_a sense_n and_o that_o the_o great_a shephearde_n will_v feed_v they_o no_o long_o now_o both_o these_o thing_n be_v utter_v by_o the_o bless_a mouth_n of_o god_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o there_o be_v infallible_a truth_n in_o both_o &_o it_o be_v better_a &_o more_o agreeable_a with_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n to_o search_v out_o what_o way_n both_o these_o thing_n can_v consist_v without_o impeachment_n one_o of_o another_o than_o so_o to_o talk_v of_o the_o covenant_n that_o we_o shall_v gainsay_v the_o pprophecy_n of_o the_o defection_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o apostle_n paul_n have_v wise_o observe_v that_o the_o covenant_n of_o god_n be_v not_o annul_v by_o the_o defection_n of_o the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o i●…wes_n in_o respect_n that_o a_o remnant_n 5_o be_v save_v through_o the_o election_n of_o grace_n the_o roman_a church_n in_o like_a manner_n cast_v up_o that_o god_n have_v promise_v that_o the_o 16_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o the_o church_n and_o the_o same_o god_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o his_o holy_a apostle_n have_v foretell_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o defection_n from_o the_o faith_n both_o these_o 2_o prophecy_n must_v be_v true_a neither_o do_v the_o apostasy_n of_o the_o great_a multitude_n presuppose_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v perish_v or_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n make_v of_o none_o effect_n but_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o this_o apostasy_n a_o remnant_n be_v save_v according_a to_o the_o election_n of_o grace_n joseph_n in_o the_o year_n of_o famine_n be_v provident_a 47_o and_o keep_v corn_n asorehand_n both_o for_o food_n to_o man_n and_o beast_n and_o for_o seed_n to_o the_o ground_n but_o christ_n be_v more_o provident_a in_o the_o year_n of_o horrible_a apostasy_n from_o the_o faith_n to_o keep_v aforehand_o a_o save_v handful_a as_o seed_n for_o the_o propagation_n of_o the_o church_n wherefore_o let_v no_o man_n conclude_v of_o the_o long_a last_a apostasy_n of_o the_o jew_n or_o yet_o of_o the_o popish_a church_n that_o the_o covenant_n of_o god_n be_v of_o none_o effect_n and_o that_o the_o church_n be_v perish_v the_o antichrist_n of_o who_o the_o apostle_n speakeeh_fw-it be_v not_o one_o particular_a man_n opposite_a to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n as_o many_o do_v think_v but_o rather_o a_o kingdom_n have_v forerunner_n have_v a_o growth_n and_o hinderer_n of_o the_o growth_n have_v advancer_n admirer_n worshipper_n follower_n discoverer_n against_o who_o war_n be_v intend_v y●…a_o long_o last_a war_n until_o this_o kingdom_n be_v drunken_a with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o final_o for_o this_o kingdom_n god_n have_v ordain_v a_o fall_n whereat_o all_o her_o follower_n shall_v be_v sad_a and_o lament_v for_o her_o sudden_a and_o unexpected_a desolation_n but_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n shall_v rejoice_v all_o these_o thing_n can_v be_v do_v in_o one_o man_n age_n therefore_o i_o take_v the_o word_n antichrist_n for_o a_o kingdom_n opposite_a to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n he_o be_v call_v the_o man_n of_o sin_n emphaticklie_o because_o in_o multitude_n ripeness_n and_o superlative_a excess_n of_o all_o kind_n of_o sin_n and_o abomination_n this_o kingdom_n go_v beyond_o all_o other_o king●…omes_v lewd_a in_o manner_n more_o corrupt_a in_o doctrine_n more_o blasphemous_a in_o opinion_n more_o deceitful_a in_o carriage_n more_o proud_a in_o attempt_n even_o against_o they_o who_o be_v in_o authority_n than_o any_o society_n of_o people_n have_v be_v before_o set_v their_o mouth_n against_o the_o heaven_n command_v the_o angel_n of_o god_n to_o carry_v soul_n to_o heaven_n because_o their_o armour_n be_v cross_v their_o foot_n be_v in_o the_o way_n lead_v to_o the_o holy_a land_n their_o intention_n be_v to_o fight_v against_o the_o saracene_n this_o do_v pope_n clemens_n the_o six_o in_o his_o bull_n give_v to_o the_o cross_a soldier_n now_o whether_o their_o soul_n have_v be_v purge_v by_o faith_n in_o the_o fountain_n of_o christ_n blood_n or_o not_o it_o be_v no_o matter_n it_o be_v enough_o that_o they_o die_v in_o that_o journey_n the_o ang●…ls_n must_v be_v obedient_a to_o the_o roman_a antichrist_n to_o carry_v their_o soul_n forthwith_o to_o heaven_n after_o their_o death_n notwithstanding_o of_o all_o this_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n must_v be_v count_v so_o complete_a and_o perfect_a that_o he_o can_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o to_o be_v in_o such_o high_a pre-eminence_n that_o albeit_o he_o carry_v innumerable_a soul_n headlong_o to_o hell_n no_o man_n 6_o shall_v demand_v of_o he_o wherefore_o he_o do_v so_o yea_o and_o further_o horrible_a sin_n such_o as_o promise_v break_v to_o infideles_fw-la and_o heretic_n and_o vile_a treason_n against_o christian_a prince_n have_v open_a allowance_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o roman_a antichrist_n and_o therefore_o he_o may_v just_o be_v call_v the_o man_n of_o sin_n moreover_o the_o antichrist_n be_v call_v the_o child_n of_o perdition_n in_o two_o respect_n to_o wit_n active_o and_o passive_o active_o because_o he_o be_v a_o ringleader_n to_o those_o who_o walk_v in_o the_o way_n of_o perdition_n passive_o because_o he_o be_v ordain_v for_o destruction_n and_o to_o be_v consume_v by_o the_o breath_n of_o the_o mouth_n of_o christ._n in_o both_o these_o respect_n judas_n seem_v to_o have_v be_v the_o type_n of_o the_o antichrist_n first_o he_o be_v a_o ringleader_n to_o the_o band_n of_o soldier_n which_o come_v from_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o the_o ruler_n to_o take_v christ_n secondlie_o he_o be_v appoint_v to_o destruction_n and_o of_o
he_o christ_n say_v sure_o the_o son_n of_o man_n go_v his_o way_n as_o it_o be_v write_v of_o he_o but_o woe_n be_v unto_o 24_o that_o man_n by_o who_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v betray_v it_o have_v be_v good_a for_o that_o man_n if_o he_o have_v never_o be_v bear_v now_o the_o antichrist_n represent_v by_o judas_n he_o be_v also_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v the_o child_n of_o destruction_n for_o both_o the_o forementioned_a respect_v he_o lead_v man_n to_o destruction_n and_o he_o be_v ordain_v to_o be_v consume_v by_o the_o glorious_a appearance_n of_o christ._n how_o the_o roman_a antichrist_n lead_v man_n headlonge_v to_o destruction_n i_o may_v prove_v by_o many_o example_n but_o for_o the_o present_a i_o shall_v content_v i_o with_o the_o example_n of_o one_o age_n and_o of_o one_o nation_n in_o this_o age_n to_o wit_n in_o the_o seven_o centurie_n absolute_o lead_v by_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o roman_a antichrist_n the_o nation_n of_o the_o goth_n domine_v in_o spain_n they_o forsake_v the_o impious_a heresy_n of_o the_o arrian_n whereunto_o they_o be_v miserable_o addict_v in_o the_o day_n of_o richaredus_n after_o richaredus_n day_n they_o follow_v the_o roman_a chair_n so_o absolute_o that_o in_o the_o counsel_n convene_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o sesivandus_fw-la chintilla_fw-la chindasuvindus_n recesuvindus_n and_o bambas_n whatsoever_o be_v allow_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v allowance_n by_o they_o and_o whatsoever_o the_o roman_a church_n disallow_v that_o be_v in_o like_a manner_n disallow_v by_o they_o in_o the_o counsel_n of_o toledo_n bracara_n and_o hispalis_n yea_o and_o in_o follow_v the_o r●…mane_a church_n they_o be_v so_o officious_a that_o albeit_o in_o bid_v and_o forbid_v they_o exceed_v not_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n yet_o in_o aggreadge_v the_o punishment_n of_o they_o who_o transgress_v the_o ordinance_n which_o they_o borrow_v from_o the_o roman_a chair_n they_o over-went_a the_o severity_n of_o the_o roman_a discipline_n in_o the_o nine_o council_n of_o toledo_n marriage_n of_o man_n in_o spiritual_a calling_n be_v detest_v in_o spain_n as_o it_o be_v in_o italy_n but_o the_o child_n 10._o procreate_v by_o bishop_n presbyter_n deacon_n etc._n etc._n be_v ordain_v to_o be_v more_o severe_o punish_v in_o spain_n than_o they_o be_v in_o italy_n for_o in_o italy_n we_o read_v of_o theodoretus_n that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o theodorus_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n yet_o be_v he_o admit_v to_o the_o popedom_n and_o be_v successor_n to_o pope_n ihonne_v the_o four_o but_o in_o spain_n the_o child_n of_o bishop_n be_v not_o only_o deprive_v of_o the_o heritage_n ●…ppertaining_v to_o their_o parent_n but_o also_o be_v mancip●…ted_v to_o perpetual_a service_n as_o slave_n and_o servant_n who_o be_v buy_v with_o money_n in_o like_a manner_n in_o the_o four_o council_n of_o toledo_n gather_v 4._o by_o sesinandus_fw-la they_o be_v superstitious_a out_o of_o measure_n even_o beyond_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o doxology_n when_o gloria_fw-la patri_fw-la be_v sing_v they_o ordain_v that_o to_o gloria_fw-la honour_n shall_v be_v add_v with_o intermination_n of_o punishment_n to_o they_o who_o shall_v say_v gloria_fw-la patri_fw-la &_o filio_fw-la without_o this_o addition_n gloria_fw-la &_o honour_n patri_fw-la &_o filio_fw-la in_o so_o do_v damn_v the_o very_a perfect_a form_n of_o prayer_n indict_v by_o our_o lord_n to_o his_o disciple_n the_o doxology_n whereof_o be_v this_o for_o thou_o be_v the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o power_n and_o the_o glory_n for_o ever_o amen_n 13_o without_o mention_n of_o the_o word_n honour_n in_o a_o word_n the_o goth_n riegn_v in_o spain_n the_o more_o officious_a they_o be_v in_o follow_v absolute_o all_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o roman_a antichrist_n the_o near_o they_o be_v to_o eternal_a destruction_n because_o he_o be_v just_o call_v the_o man_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o child_n of_o destruction_n now_o it_o be_v to_o be_v mark_v that_o these_o two_o name_n of_o the_o antichrist_n to_o wit_n the_o man_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o child_n of_o perdition_n they_o go_v conjunct_o together_o because_o when_o sin_n be_v near_o destruction_n also_o be_v at_o hand_n except_o sin_n by_o repentance_n be_v abolish_v and_o the_o prophet_n pronounce_v a_o woe_n against_o they_o that_o put_v far_o away_o the_o evil_a day_n and_o approach_v to_o the_o seat_n of_o iniquity_n moreov_a the_o apostle_n foretelleth_a that_o 3_o the_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v disclose_v or_o reveil_v that_o be_v how_o soever_o he_o shall_v mask_v himself_o with_o the_o vizard_n of_o holy_a title_n that_o he_o be_v the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n &_o the_o successor_n of_o peter_n &_o to_o he_o be_v concredite_fw-la the_o care_n of_o all_o the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n disperse_v in_o the_o whole_a world_n nevertheless_o he_o shall_v be_v strip_v naked_a &_o all_o these_o mask_n shall_v be_v pluck_v from_o his_o face_n and_o he_o shall_v be_v know_v to_o be_v a_o adversary_n to_o christ_n and_o a_o abuser_n of_o christ_n people_n now_o consider_v that_o this_o pprophecy_n presuppose_v that_o the_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v unknown_a for_o a_o long_a space_n and_o in_o end_n shall_v be_v discover_v if_o it_o shall_v be_v demand_v how_o can_v the_o antichrist_n be_v unknown_a who_o lurk_v not_o in_o a_o corner_n but_o sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o have_v power_n of_o government_n of_o church-affaire_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o in_o time_n of_o the_o darkness_n of_o the_o night_n a_o foe_n be_v hardly_o discern_v from_o a_o friend_n and_o the_o smoke_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n whereby_o both_o the_o sun_n &_o the_o air_n be_v darken_v 2_o may_v easy_o have_v dim_v the_o sight_n of_o simple_a people_n so_o that_o they_o can_v not_o discern_v the_o insolent_a pride_n of_o the_o antichrist_n usurp_v the_o honour_n only_o due_a to_o christ._n the_o mean_n of_o the_o discovery_n of_o the_o antichrist_n i_o remit_v unto_o the_o 8._o verse_n and_o i_o proceed_v to_o the_o next_o verse_n in_o the_o 4._o verse_n of_o the_o chap._n the_o apostle_n c●…lleth_v the_o antichrist_n a_o adversary_n to_o wit_n to_o god_n and_o he_o subjoyne●…h_v the_o reason_n because_o be_v exalt_v himself_o against_o every_o thing_n that_o be_v call_v god_n or_o that_o be_v worship_v first_o let_v we_o mark_v that_o the_o antichrist_n be_v point_v out_o by_o one_o of_o the_o name_n of_o the_o devil_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o be_v a_o adversary_n to_o god_n to_o his_o word_n and_o to_o his_o saint_n yea_o a_o adversary_n in_o the_o superlative_a degree_n because_o he_o usurp_v the_o honour_n only_o due_a to_o christ._n mortal_a prince_n count_v all_o subject_n who_o be_v disobedient_a to_o their_o law_n to_o be_v their_o adversary_n but_o if_o any_o man_n usurp_v the_o title_n of_o the_o kingdom_n the_o king_n will_v count_v he_o his_o corrival_n and_o principal_a adversary_n even_o so_o among_o all_o the_o adversary_n of_o christ_n he_o be_v count_v his_o principal_a enemy_n who_o enrich_v himself_o with_o the_o honour_n due_a to_o christ_n only_o howsoever_o he_o call_v himself_o the_o servant_n of_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n yet_o indeed_o he_o usurp_v upon_o himself_o high_a honour_n than_o be_v due_a unto_o a_o mortal_a man_n and_o therefore_o be_v call_v a_o adversary_n to_o god_n for_o the_o lord_n will_v judge_v the_o world_n according_a to_o his_o gospel_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v roman_n 2._o 16._o and_o not_o according_a to_o our_o conceit_n the_o two_o principal_a point_n of_o the_o honour_n of_o christ_n be_v faith_n and_o obedience_n the_o roman_a antichrist_n for_o to_o move_v ignorant_a people_n to_o put_v their_o trust_n in_o he_o as_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n in_o earth_n take_v upon_o he_o power_n to_o open_v the_o gate_n of_o paradise_n to_o who_o he_o please_v as_o a_o absolute_a commander_n of_o heaué_n and_o to_o deliver_v to_o the_o devil_n and_o send_v to_o hell_n by_o his_o anathemes_fw-la and_o curse_n who_o he_o please_v as_o absolute_a commander_n of_o hell_n and_o to_o loose_v prison_v soul_n out_o of_o purgatory_n as_o absolute_a commander_n of_o purgatory_n and_o to_o distribute_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o earth_n at_o his_o pleas●…re_n as_o if_o the_o earth_n be_v he_o and_o he_o have_v power_n to_o confer_v all_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o dominion_n of_o the_o world_n to_o who_o he●…pleaseth_v all_o this_o be_v do_v to_o move_v people_n to_o put_v their_o trust_n in_o he_o as_o say_v be_v the_o other_o principal_a point_n of_o the_o honour_n of_o christ_n be_v absolute_a obedience_n to_o his_o bless_a will_n without_o disputation_n doubt_v or_o reason_v in_o the_o contrary_n as_o abraham_n the_o father_n of_o the_o faithful_a do_v gen_n 22._o the_o
and_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n be_v seldom_o minister_v and_o with_o filthy_a addition_n of_o ceremony_n invent_v by_o the_o brain_n of_o man_n to_o baptism_n and_o a_o sacrilegious_a withhold_a from_o the_o people_n the_o cup_n in_o minister_a unto_o they_o the_o holy_a supper_n and_o so_o the_o fountain_n of_o live_a water_n be_v stop_v and_o cistern_n be_v open_v and_o the_o wholesome_a food_n of_o god_n people_n be_v turn_v into_o ash_n and_o in_o stead_n of_o preach_v god_n worde_n sincere_o all_o church-seruice_n be_v turn_v into_o a_o dumb_a guise_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o in_o read_v of_o prayer_n and_o passage_n of_o scripture_n into_o a_o unknown_a language_n so_o the_o people_n for_o fault_n of_o good_a instruction_n wither_v as_o grass_n when_o it_o be_v not_o refresh_v with_o dew_n and_o rain_n yea_o and_o salomon_n say_v where_o there_o be_v no_o vision_n the_o people_n decay_n prov_n 29._o 18._o the_o third_o and_o most_o venomous_a consequence_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v procession_n and_o adoration_n for_o hosty_n consecrate_v in_o time_n of_o mass_n although_o not_o break_v and_o eat_v they_o be_v count_v christ_n body_n and_o carry_v about_o in_o procession_n and_o worship_v this_o be_v not_o the_o ancient_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o sacrament_n consist_v in_o the_o action_n and_o use_n thereof_o so_o long_o as_o the_o blessing_n and_o the_o action_n of_o break_v distribute_v and_o eat_v last_v the_o bread_n be_v count_v holy_a and_o represent_v the_o bl●…ssed_a body_n of_o jesus_n but_o after_o these_o holy_a action_n be_v end_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o bread_n that_o be_v not_o use_v in_o the_o sacrament_n it_o be_v distribute_v to_o the_o poor_a but_o it_o be_v not_o keep_v in_o box_n to_o be_v carry_v in_o procession_n and_o to_o be_v adore_v and_o worship_v by_o ignorant_a people_n and_o of_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v deficient_a in_o popery_n i_o have_v of●…_n time_n observe_v that_o antiquity_n whereof_o they_o principal_o brag_v be_v most_o deficient_a and_o lack_v in_o they_o the_o ground_n of_o popish_a procession_n no_o doubt_n be_v the_o send_n of_o the_o sacrament_n to_o those_o who_o be_v sick_a and_o absent_a by_o some_o 2._o necessity_n but_o they_o read_v not_o in_o justinus_n nor_o in_o any_o other_o ancient_a writer_n that_o people_n who_o meet_v the_o deacon_n carry_v the_o eucharist_n to_o sick_a person_n fall_v down_o upon_o their_o knee_n and_o worship_v it_o this_o abominable_a idolatry_n more_o vile_a than_o the_o idolatry_n of_o the_o gentile_n be_v not_o of_o ancient_a time_n in_o use_n in_o the_o church_n now_o the_o lord_n who_o have_v redeem_v our_o soul_n from_o death_n and_o who_o have_v call_v we_o from_o darkness_n unto_o his_o marucilous_a love_n establish_v our_o soul_n in_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n through_o christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n amen_o finis_fw-la the_o viii_o centurie_n chap._n i._o of_o emperor_n philippicus_n after_o justinian_n the_o second_o be_v slay_v philippicus_n reign_v two_o year_n and_o nine_o month_n great_a dissension_n fall_v out_o betwixt_o the_o emperor_n philippicus_n and_o constantine_n bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o raze_v as_o appear_v the_o picture_n of_o father_n who_o be_v present_a at_o the_o six_o general_n council_n which_o be_v picture_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o sophia_n be_v abolish_v by_o the_o commandment_n of_o philippicus_n constantine_n bishop_n of_o rome_n declare_v the_o emperor_n a_o heretic_n and_o command_v that_o his_o name_n shall_v be_v raze_v out_o of_o charter_n this_o be_v the_o first_o great_a direct_a and_o violent_a opposition_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n attempt_v against_o noble_a emperor_n philippicus_n be_v take_v and_o his_o eye_n be_v put_v out_o by_o anastasius_n otherwise_o call_v artemius_n his_o secretary_n who_o reign_v in_o his_o stead_n artemius_n artemius_n otherwise_o call_v anastasius_n reign_v one_o year_n and_o three_o month_n he_o depose_v ihonne_v patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n who_o keep_v not_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o place_v germanus_n in_o his_o stead_n he_o be_v take_v by_o theodosius_n and_o send_v prisoner_n to_o nice_a and_o from_o thence_o to_o thessalonica_n where_o he_o be_v compel_v to_o renounce_v his_o imperial_a dignity_n and_o to_o be_v clothe_v with_o the_o habit_n of_o a_o monk_n theodosius_fw-la theodosius_fw-la reign_v scarce_o one_o year_n and_o when_o he_o hear_v that_o leo_n isaurus_n governor_n in_o the_o east_n part_n be_v salute_v emperor_n by_o the_o army_n he_o willing_o give_v over_o his_o imperial_a dignity_n and_o live_v a_o private_a and_o peaceable_a man_n leo_n isaurus_n leo_n isaurus_n reign_v twenty_o four_o year_n great_a commotion_n be_v in_o his_o time_n both_o in_o church_n and_o policy_n in_o church-affaire_n he_o be_v a_o hater_n of_o image_n and_o burn_v image_n make_v of_o wood_n other_o image_n he_o melt_v and_o misfashion_v against_o who_o gregorius_n the_o second_o puff_v up_o with_o antichristian_a pride_n he_o oppone_v himselfen_o ●…t_o only_o allow_v worship_v of_o image_n but_o also_o forbid_v to_o pay_v tribute_n to_o the_o emperor_n leo._n the_o emperor_n on_o the_o other_o part_n irritate_v with_o the_o proud_a attempt_n of_o gregorius_n the_o second_o he_o use_v indirect_a mean_n to_o cut_v he_o off_o but_o the_o enterprise_n of_o his_o deputy_n marinus_n paulus_n eutychius_n and_o their_o follower_n succeed_v unprosperous_o moreover_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n seek_v support_v from_o the_o lombardis_n who_o have_v be_v at_o all_o time_n precede_v enemy_n to_o the_o chair_n of_o rome_n yet_o in_o leo_n his_o day_n they_o be_v bind_v with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o a_o covenant_n of_o friendship_n for_o none_o other_o cause_n but_o this_o only_a to_o shake_v off_o the_o yoke_n of_o the_o emperor_n obedience_n and_o when_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n see_v that_o the_o emperor_n have_v great_a business_n in_o war_n against_o the_o saracen_n he_o think_v it_o a_o sit_v occasion_n to_o draw_v the_o dominion_n of_o italic_a unto_o his_o own_o subjection_n and_o 3._o therefore_o with_o advice_n of_o his_o clergy_n he_o both_o excommunicate_v the_o emperor_n as_o a_o destroyer_n of_o the_o image_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o disauthorise_v he_o of_o his_o imperial_a soveranitie_n so_o early_o begin_v the_o increase_a grandour_n of_o the_o antichrist_n to_o send_v forth_o the_o thuńder-bolte_n of_o curse_n against_o the_o anoint_a of_o the_o lord_n in_o this_o emperor_n day_n the_o saracene_n pass_v over_o the_o strait_n invade_v the_o kingdom_n of_o spain_n slay_v rodericus_fw-la king_n of_o goth_n and_o his_o son_n and_o put_v a_o end_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o goth_n in_o spain_n after_o they_o have_v reign_v 346._o year_n and_o be_v incite_v by_o eudo_fw-la duke_n of_o aquitania_n they_o march_v towards_o france_n but_o 2._o through_o the_o valour_n of_o carolus_n martellus_n a_o man_n of_o noble_a birth_n in_o france_n they_o be_v so_o encounter_v that_o three_o hundred_o thousand_o and_o threescore_o and_o ten_o thousand_o saracene_n be_v slay_v and_o the_o country_n of_o france_n be_v make_v free_a of_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o saracen_n constantinus_n copronymus_n after_o leo_n his_o son_n constantinus_n copronymus_n reign_v 35._o year_n chytreus_n reckon_v only_o 23._o year_n because_o he_o hate_v the_o worship_v of_o image_n which_o error_n have_v take_v deep_a root_n in_o this_o age_n the_o writer_n of_o the_o history_n of_o this_o time_n have_v dip_v their_o pen_n in_o gall_n and_o wormwood_n to_o blaspheme_v the_o honourable_a name_n of_o constantinus_n but_o whatsoever_o paulus_n diaconus_fw-la or_o zonaras_fw-mi have_v write_v to_o his_o disgrace_n his_o name_n will_v be_v in_o honourable_a account_n and_o regard_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n the_o senate_n and_o the_o people_n of_o constantinople_n addict_v to_o the_o worship_v of_o image_n hate_v the_o emperor_n and_o be_v glad_a of_o the_o false_a rumour_v tithing_n of_o his_o death_n when_o he_o go_v to_o fight_v against_o the_o arabian_n &_o they_o choose_v artabasdus_n to_o be_v emperor_n in_o his_o stead_n but_o constantine_n return_v to_o constantinople_n besiege_v the_o town_n and_o recover_v his_o own_o kingdom_n again_o he_o gather_v a_o general_n council_n in_o constantinople_n anno_fw-la 755._o wherein_o the_o worship_v of_o image_n be_v damn_v as_o shall_v be_v declare_v god_n will_v in_o its_o own_o place_n in_o this_o emperor_n day_n be_v war_n betwixt_o the_o king_n of_o lombardis_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o the_o roman_a bishop_n beg_v the_o help_n of_o carolus_n martellus_n against_o luitprand_n and_o the_o help_n of_o pipinus_fw-la against_o aistulphus_n and_o the_o help_n of_o carolus_n magnus_n against_o desiderius_n all_o king_n of_o lombardis_n and_o so_o by_o continual_a implore_v the_o help_n of_o the_o noble_n &_o king_n of_o france_n the_o
allowance_n and_o the_o emperor_n leo_n be_v both_o excommunicate_v and_o likewise_o so_o far_o as_o in_o he_o lay_v deprive_v of_o his_o imperial_a dignity_n so_o early_o do_v the_o beast_n of_o rome_n even_o in_o civil_a matter_n usurp_v authority_n over_o the_o prince_n and_o monarch_n of_o the_o world_n in_o his_o day_n the_o town_n of_o rome_n be_v besiege_v by_o luitprand_a king_n of_o lombardis_n but_o carolus_n martellus_n a_o noble_a prince_n in_o france_n be_v solicit_v by_o the_o letter_n of_o gregory_n to_o support_v the_o distress_a estate_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n he_o persuade_v luitprand_a to_o desist_v from_o molest_v and_o befiege_v the_o town_n of_o rome_n after_o gregory_n the_o three_o succeed_v zacharias_n the_o first_o and_o continue_v ten_o year_n four_o month_n and_o four_o day_n in_o antichristian_a first_o pride_n he_o surpass_v all_o his_o predecessor_n distribute_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n at_o his_o pleasure_n for_o he_o procure_v that_o pipinus_fw-la the_o son_n of_o carolus_n martellus_n who_o be_v but_o a_o subject_n and_o a_o ruler_n of_o the_o king_n house_n shall_v be_v anoint_v king_n of_o france_n and_o that_o childericus_fw-la the_o lawful_a successor_n of_o the_o kingdom_n 8_o shall_v have_v his_o head_n shave_v and_o be_v thrust_v into_o a_o monastery_n likewise_o he_o procure_v that_o carolomannus_n the_o elder_a brother_n of_o pipinus_fw-la shall_v be_v a_o monk_n of_o the_o order_n of_o saint_n benedict_n in_o the_o monastery_n of_o cassinate_n rachis_n also_o king_n of_o lombarde_n after_o he_o have_v reign_v four_o year_n give_v over_o his_o kingly_a authority_n and_o enter_v into_o a_o monastery_n and_o exhort_v his_o wife_n and_o child_n to_o do_v the_o like_a and_o so_o his_o brother_n aistulphus_n obtain_v the_o kingdom_n pipinus_fw-la be_v anoint_v king_n of_o france_n by_o bonifacius_n at_o the_o commandment_n of_o pope_n zacharias_n anno_fw-la 750._o or_o as_o platina_n reckon_v anno_fw-la 753._o what_o recompense_n of_o reward_n pipinus_fw-la render_v to_o the_o chair_n of_o rome_n for_o this_o benevolence_n or_o rather_o this_o manifest_a iniquity_n of_o zacharias_n it_o will_v be_v declare_v in_o the_o description_n of_o the_o life_n government_n and_o carriage_n of_o stephanus_n the_o second_o if_o the_o lord_n please_v after_o zacharias_n succeed_v stephanus_n the_o second_o and_o rule_v five_o year_n &_o one_o month_n in_o his_o time_n aistulphus_n second_o king_n of_o lombardes_n besiege_a rome_n at_o two_o diverse_a time_n and_o stephanus_n implore_v the_o aid_n and_o assistance_n of_o pipinus_fw-la king_n of_o france_n at_o both_o time_n at_o the_o first_o time_n pipinus_fw-la besiege_v aistulpbus_fw-la in_o papia_n the_o chief_a city_n of_o the_o residence_n of_o the_o king_n of_o lombarde_n and_o compel_v he_o to_o restore_v to_o the_o chair_n of_o rome_n all_o the_o town_n and_o land_n which_o by_o violence_n he_o have_v reave_v from_o they_o but_o at_o his_o second_o come_v he_o not_o only_o relieve_v rome_n from_o the_o siege_n of_o the_o lombarde_n but_o also_o bestow_v upon_o the_o chair_n of_o rome_n the_o dominion_n of_o ravenna_n and_o penta-pole_n appertain_v to_o the_o emperor_n of_o the_o east_n and_o which_o they_o enjoy_v since_o the_o death_n of_o narses_n 170._o year_n in_o so_o do_v there_o be_v 2_o such_o bargain_v betwixt_o the_o king_n of_o france_n and_o the_o pope_n as_o be_v of_o old_a betwixt_o herod_n and_o the_o jew_n he_o gratify_v they_o with_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n apostle_n and_o they_o gratify_v he_o on_o the_o 12._o other_o part_n by_o give_v to_o he_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n even_o so_o zacharias_n bishop_n of_o rome_n bestow_v upon_o pipinus_fw-la the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n which_o due_o appertain_v to_o another_o and_o pipinus_fw-la again_o bestow_v upon_o the_o chair_n of_o rome_n the_o dominion_n of_o ravenna_n and_o pentapolis_n which_o due_o appertain_v to_o the_o emperor_n of_o the_o east_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o make_v a_o particular_a rehearsal_n of_o the_o town_n &_o territory_n bestow_v upon_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n by_o the_o donation_n of_o pipinus_fw-la but_o not_o of_o constantine_n as_o they_o have_v rumour_v most_o fabulous_o many_o year_n ago_o inprimis_fw-la ravenna_n bononia_n imola_n faventia_n commaclum_fw-la hadria_n pompilii_n forum_n levii_n forum_n cesena_n bobium_n ferraria_n ficoclas_n and_o gabellum_fw-la all_o these_o town_n be_v under_o the_o dominion_n of_o ravenna_n and_o in_o pentapolis_n ariminum_n pisaurum_n concha_n fanum_n senogallia_n ancona_n auximum_n humanam_fw-la aesium_fw-la sempronii_n forum_n mons_fw-la feretri_fw-la urbium_fw-la balmense_n territorium_fw-la callas_n luceolos_n eugubium_n together_o with_o the_o castle_n and_o land_n appertain_v to_o these_o town_n to_o wit_n the_o province_n call_v in_o our_o time_n romandiola_n and_o marca_n anconitana_n and_o of_o old_a aemilia_n flaminea_fw-la and_o picenum_n thus_o we_o see_v what_o a_o rich_a reward_n the_o chair_n of_o rome_n obtain_v for_o their_o defection_n from_o the_o emperor_n of_o the_o east_n and_o their_o favour_n towards_o the_o king_n of_o france_n also_o for_o further_a confirmation_n of_o friendship_n betwixt_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o king_n of_o france_n pope_n stephanus_n the_o second_o procure_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v invite_v to_o be_v witness_n at_o the_o baptism_n of_o the_o king_n of_o france_n his_o young_a son_n at_o which_o time_n as_o a_o man_n covetous_a of_o vain_a glory_n he_o suffer_v pipinus_fw-la and_o charles_n his_o son_n to_o kiss_v his_o foot_n and_o to_o hold_v his_o stirrup_n and_o to_o lead_v his_o horse_n by_o the_o bridle_n and_o final_o he_o be_v content_a to_o be_v mount_v up_o and_o carry_v upon_o the_o shoulder_n of_o man_n leave_v behind_o he_o a_o example_n of_o stink_a pride_n to_o the_o posterity_n after_o follow_v after_o stephanus_n the_o second_o succeed_v his_o brother_n paulus_n the_o first_o who_o continue_v 10._o year_n and_o one_o month_n in_o antichristian_a pride_n he_o be_v nothing_o inferior_a to_o his_o predecessor_n for_o he_o send_v first_o ambassador_n to_o the_o emperor_n of_o the_o east_n constantinus_n copronymus_n to_o exhort_v he_o to_o restore_v again_o the_o image_n of_o the_o saint_n which_o he_o have_v demolish_v with_o intermination_n of_o curse_v if_o he_o refuse_v to_o be_v obedient_a to_o the_o pope_n counsel_n in_o his_o time_n aistulphus_n king_n of_o lombardes_n die_v and_o desiderius_n the_o last_o king_n of_o lombardes_n reign_v in_o his_o stead_n constantine_n the_o brother_n of_o desiderius_n king_n of_o lombardis_n succeed_v second_o to_o paulus_n the_o first_o a_o man_n admit_v to_o the_o popedom_n before_o he_o have_v receive_v ecclesiastical_a order_n therefore_o he_o be_v hate_v of_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n and_o denude_v of_o his_o papal_a dignity_n after_o he_o have_v continue_v one_o year_n and_o one_o month_n some_o writer_n affirm_v that_o his_o eye_n be_v thrust_v out_o and_o that_o he_o be_v send_v to_o a_o monastery_n other_o affirm_v that_o he_o be_v burn_v with_o fire_n by_o the_o hateful_a malice_n of_o the_o roman_n to_o he_o succeed_v stephanus_n the_o third_o who_o rule_v 4._o year_n 5._o month_n and_o 27._o day_n he_o gather_v a_o council_n at_o rome_n three_o in_o the_o which_o 12._o bishop_n of_o france_n send_v thither_o by_o charles_n the_o mame_n be_v present_a with_o the_o bishop_n of_o italy_n who_o disauthorise_v constantine_n his_o predecessor_n &_o annul_v all_o his_o decree_n likewise_o they_o damn_v the_o 7._o general_n council_n convene_v in_o constantinople_n by_o constantinus_n copronymus_n wherein_o the_o worship_v of_o image_n be_v disallow_v but_o in_o this_o lateran_n council_n assemble_v by_o stephanus_n the_o third_o the_o worship_v of_o image_n get_v allowance_n and_o it_o be_v think_v that_o god_n and_o the_o saint_n be_v in_o deterior_fw-la case_n than_o mortal_a prince_n incase_o that_o image_n may_v be_v make_v to_o represent_v mortal_a prince_n but_o not_o to_o represent_v god_n and_o his_o saint_n it_o be_v rumour_v in_o this_o pope_n time_n that_o charles_n 3_o king_n of_o france_n be_v of_o intention_n to_o marry_v bertha_n the_o daughter_n of_o desiderius_n king_n of_o lombarde_n stephanus_n fear_v lest_o this_o marriage_n shall_v undo_v the_o friendship_n late_o contract_v betwixt_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o king_n of_o france_n dissuade_v charles_n from_o the_o marriage_n aforesaid_a as_o if_o the_o marriage_n of_o a_o woman_n of_o the_o kindred_n of_o the_o lombarde_n be_v a_o mix_n of_o darkness_n with_o light_n and_o of_o belial_n with_o christ_n and_o the_o minass_a letter_n of_o stephanus_n the_o three_o prevail_v so_o far_o at_o the_o hand_n of_o charles_n the_o great_a that_o he_o repudiate_v bertha_n the_o daughter_n of_o desiderius_n his_o lawful_a marry_a wife_n after_o he_o have_v cohabit_v with_o her_o one_o year_n
and_o he_o marry_v another_o woman_n name_v hildegarde_n of_o the_o dukerie_n of_o sweve_v these_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o antichristian_a pride_n to_o threaten_v the_o torment_n of_o hell_n against_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o world_n for_o marriage_n if_o so_o be_v they_o foresee_v any_o damnage_n may_v redound_v to_o the_o chaite_n of_o rome_n by_o the_o marriage_n of_o prince_n after_o stephanus_n the_o third_o succeed_v adrian_n the_o first_o and_o govern_v 23._o year_n ten_o month_n and_o seventeen_o da●…es_n in_o his_o day_n charles_n the_o great_a come_v into_o italy_n with_o a_o army_n and_o banish_a 1_o desiderius_n king_n of_o lombarde_n his_o wife_n and_o child_n to_o lion_n in_o france_n and_o utter_o suodue_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o lombarde_n which_o have_v continue_v in_o italy_n 204._o year_n now_o in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 776._o this_o kingdom_n be_v abolish_v &_o undo_v by_o charles_n the_o great_a king_n of_o france_n for_o the_o favour_n he_o carry_v towards_o the_o chair_n of_o rome_n likewise_o he_o augment_v the_o donation_n of_o his_o father_n pipinus_fw-la and_o he_o bestow_v upon_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o isle_n of_o corsica_n and_o the_o place_n interjacent_a betwixt_o luca_n and_o parma_n with_o the_o dukedom_n of_o spoleto_n and_o benevento_n this_o be_v 〈◊〉_d do_v charles_n return_v back_o again_o to_o france_n carry_v with_o he_o bertha_n his_o brother_n wife_n and_o her_o child_n who_o come_v to_o adrian_n bishop_n of_o rome_n hope_v for_o favour_n at_o his_o hand_n and_o that_o he_o shall_v have_v anoint_v her_o son_n to_o be_v king_n of_o france_n see_v carolomannus_n their_o father_n be_v now_o dead_a but_o he_o deliver_v they_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o charles_n and_o so_o charles_n the_o great_a reign_v without_o exception_n as_o absolute_a commander_n of_o france_n irene_n the_o empress_n of_o the_o east_n during_o the_o time_n of_o adrians_n popedom_n assemble_v a_o great_a council_n at_o nice_a in_o bythinia_n where_o the_o adoration_n of_o image_n be_v allow_v in_o this_o council_n the_o pope_n ambassador_n be_v present_a and_o his_o own_o letter_n be_v read_v in_o the_o council_n no_o man_n give_v great_a allowance_n to_o the_o worship_v of_o image_n than_o pope_n adrian_n do_v as_o shall_v be_v declare_v god_n will_v in_o the_o head_n of_o counsel_n it_o be_v to_o be_v mark_v that_o platina_n write_v of_o the_o death_n of_o constantinus_n copronymus_n be_v compel_v to_o bear_v witness_n to_o the_o truth_n and_o testify_v that_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o leprosy_n of_o constantine_n the_o great_a be_v a_o notable_a fable_n and_o that_o it_o spring_v up_o by_o occasion_n of_o the_o disease_n of_o constantinus_n copronymus_n the_o father_n in_o law_n of_o the_o empress_n irene_n to_o adrian_n succeed_v leo_n the_o three_o and_o govern_v 21._o year_n he_o be_v hate_v by_o pascalis_n and_o campulus_n who_o lie_v in_o wait_n for_o he_o three_o at_o the_o church_n of_o saint_n sylvester_n throw_v he_o down_o to_o the_o ground_n spoy_z led_z he_o of_o his_o pontifical_a garment_n beat_v he_o with_o many_o stroke_n and_o final_o cast_v he_o into_o prison_n and_o band_n but_o he_o escape_v by_o the_o mean_n of_o a_o cubiculare_fw-la name_v albinus_n &_o lurk_v in_o the_o vatican_n until_o the_o time_n that_o unigisius_fw-la duke_n of_o spoleto_n convoy_v he_o safe_o unto_o his_o bound_n at_o this_o time_n charles_n king_n of_o france_n have_v war_n against_o the_o saxones_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o come_v to_o he_o to_o complain_v of_o the_o injury_n which_o he_o have_v receive_v be_v send_v back_o again_o very_o honourable_o accompany_v with_o the_o soldier_n of_o charles_n king_n of_o france_n and_o with_o promise_n that_o he_o shall_v without_o delay_n address_v his_o journey_n towards_o italy_n when_o charles_n come_v to_o italy_n the_o pope_n enemy_n be_v so_o dash_v with_o fear_n that_o they_o dare_v not_o appear_v to_o accuse_v he_o and_o the_o clergy_n of_o rome_n think_v meet_v that_o no_o man_n shall_v judge_v of_o the_o apostolic_a chair_n but_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v his_o own_o judge_n leo_n take_v the_o book_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o his_o hand_n and_o swear_v that_o he_o be_v innocent_a of_o all_o the_o crime_n object_v against_o he_o 10_o and_o so_o he_o be_v absolve_v &_o pascalis_n &_o campulus_fw-la the_o friend_n of_o the_o late_a decease_a pope_n adrian_n be_v count_v worthy_a of_o death_n but_o pope_n leo_n intercide_v for_o safety_n of_o their_o life_n so_o they_o be_v banish_v to_o france_n for_o this_o benefit_n leo_n cause_v charles_n to_o be_v declare_v emperor_n of_o the_o west_n and_o crown_v he_o with_o the_o imperial_a diadem_n and_o from_o that_o time_n forwards_o the_o custom_n begin_v that_o emperor_n shall_v receive_v their_o coronation_n from_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n notwithstanding_o of_o this_o it_o be_v ordain_v that_o no_o man_n shall_v be_v elect_v bishop_n of_o rome_n without_o advice_n of_o the_o emperor_n of_o the_o west_n and_o without_o receive_v investment_n from_o he_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n in_o this_o centurie_n be_v constantinople_n place_v and_o displace_v according_a to_o the_o changeable_a conceit_n of_o the_o emperor_n under_o the_o reign_n of_o justinian_n the_o second_o cyrus_n be_v patriarch_n who_o philippicus_n remove_v and_o advance_v one_o name_v ihonne_v who_o have_v foretell_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v make_v emperor_n this_o ihonne_v be_v infect_v with_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o monothelite_n and_o be_v remove_v by_o artemius_n by_o who_o germanus_n be_v advance_v to_o the_o chair_n of_o constantinople_n germanus_n continue_v until_o the_o reign_n of_o constantinus_n copronymus_n he_o be_v depose_v and_o excommunicate_v by_o the_o general_n council_n assemble_v by_o constantinus_n because_o he_o allow_v the_o worship_v of_o image_n to_o he_o succeed_v anastasius_n who_o albeit_o he_o dislike_v image_n yet_o he_o be_v unthankful_a to_o the_o emperor_n and_o favour_v the_o seditious_a attempt_n of_o the_o people_n of_o constantinople_n who_o advance_v artabasdus_n to_o the_o imperial_a dignity_n moreov_a he_o slander_v the_o emperor_n as_o if_o he_o have_v speak_v against_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ._n he_o receive_v a_o just_a recompense_n of_o his_o unthankfulness_n for_o he_o be_v depose_v and_o scourge_v and_o set_v upon_o a_o ass_n with_o his_o face_n towards_o the_o ass_n tail_n and_o make_v a_o ridiculous_a spectacle_n to_o the_o people_n after_o he_o constantine_n a_o monk_n be_v make_v patriarch_n who_o at_o the_o first_o seem_v to_o damn_v image_n but_o afterward_o he_o be_v find_v to_o be_v a_o maintainer_n and_o allower_n of_o they_o the_o emp._n banish_a he_o to_o iberia_n where_o he_o speak_v contumeliouslie_o both_o of_o the_o emperor_n and_o of_o the_o council_n hold_v at_o constantinople_n therefore_o he_o be_v bring_v back_o again_o from_o banishment_n and_o be_v behead_v and_o his_o body_n be_v trail_v through_o the_o town_n with_o a_o cord_n &_o casten_z into_o a_o pit_n where_o the_o body_n of_o malefactor_n be_v accustom_v to_o be_v casten_z after_o he_o succeed_v nicetas_n a_o man_n unlearned_a &_o advance_v by_o the_o em._n const._n copron._n for_o none_o other_o cause_n but_o only_o for_o his_o zeal_n against_o the_o worship_v of_o image_n after_o he_o succeed_v paulus_n cyprius_n who_o in_o the_o day_n of_o const._n copron._n damn_v the_o worship_v of_o image_n but_o afterward_o repent_v &_o under_o the_o reign_n of_o irene_n enter_v into_o a_o monastery_n &_o lament_v that_o he_o have_v consent_v to_o the_o abolish_n of_o image_n the_o vain_a repentance_n of_o this_o timorous_a and_o superstitious_a man_n be_v the_o chief_a occasion_n of_o the_o convocation_n of_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a by_o the_o empress_n irene_n to_o he_o succeed_v tarasius_n who_o be_v present_a at_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o give_v allowance_n to_o the_o adoration_n of_o image_n the_o prevail_a power_n of_o the_o saracene_n in_o alexandria_n antiochia_n and_o jerusalem_n do_v so_o obscure_a the_o name_n of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o these_o city_n that_o i_o have_v no_o remarkable_a thing_n to_o write_v of_o they_o in_o this_o centurie_n in_o this_o decline_a age_n wherein_o spiritual_a grace_n daily_o decay_v doctor_n and_o nothing_o increase_v except_o a_o heap_n of_o earthly_a treasure_n which_o god_n permit_v to_o be_v pour_v into_o the_o bosom_n of_o they_o who_o love_v the_o wage_n of_o iniquity_n always_o even_o at_o this_o time_n some_o man_n of_o good_a literature_n and_o learning_n do_v manifest_v themselves_o unto_o the_o world_n such_o as_o bonifacius_n bishop_n of_o mentz_n damascene_fw-la alearned_a monk_n paulus_n diaconus_fw-la a_o learned_a writer_n of_o history_n and_o beda_n a_o man_n count_v venerable_a in_o his_o time_n yet_o all_o
marriage_n and_o affirm_v that_o pavi_n give_v liberty_n to_o widow_n to_o marry_v because_o he_o know_v the_o will_n of_o god_n but_o only_o in_o a_o part_n august_n index_n h●…eres_n euseb._n lib._n 5._o cap._n 14_o &_o 16._o i_o purposely_o pass_v over_o that_o rabble_n of_o obscure_a heretic_n who_o i_o compare_v in_o the_o treatise_n of_o heresy_n to_o abortive_a birth_n such_o as_o opbitae_fw-la caiani_n sethiani_n and_o such_o like_a of_o who_o notwithstanding_o epiphanius_n vouchsafe_v to_o write_v at_o length_n no_o doubt_n to_o manifest_v the_o corruption_n of_o man_n nature_n stoop_v sometime_o so_o base_o that_o not_o only_o they_o harken_v to_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o old_a serpent_n the_o devil_n but_o also_o they_o wor_n ship_n the_o very_a instrument_n of_o the_o devil_n viz._n the_o serpent_n as_o these_o ophitae_n do_v again_o some_o heretic_n magnify_v cain_n and_o call_v he_o their_o father_n and_o other_o give_v to_o seth_n the_o honour_n due_a to_o christ._n so_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o man_n destitute_a of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n that_o come_v from_o above_o be_v like_a unto_o drunkard_n stagger_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n and_o on_o the_o left_a hand_n and_o fall_v on_o their_o face_n and_o beat_v out_o their_o own_o brain_n sometime_o they_o extol_v wicked_a man_n like_v unto_o cain_n and_o fall_v at_o the_o left_a hand_n at_o other_o time_n they_o praise_v good_a man_n like_v unto_o seth_n with_o excessive_a praise_n &_o with_o derogation_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n and_o fall_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n and_o at_o sometime_o be_v so_o benumb_v that_o they_o spare_v not_o to_o set_v the_o very_a devil_n and_o his_o instrument_n in_o the_o chair_n of_o god_n and_o fall_v like_o drunken_a fool_n on_o their_o face_n and_o knock_v out_o their_o own_o brain_n let_v no_o man_n marvel_v wherefore_o the_o name_n of_o aqvila_n a_o heretic_n man_n of_o pontus_n and_o theodosion_n of_o ephesus_n be_v not_o reckon_v in_o the_o roll_n of_o heretic_n in_o this_o age_n true_a it_o be_v that_o they_o once_o profess_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n &_o make_v defection_n again_o but_o this_o defection_n make_v not_o a_o division_n into_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n because_o they_o join_v themselves_o to_o the_o unbelieve_a jew_n who_o utter_o deny_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o of_o christian_n become_v infidel_n rather_o than_o heretic_n like_o as_o no_o man_n call_v the_o emperor_n julian_n a_o heretic_n but_o a_o apostate_n so_o aqvila_n and_o theodosion_n be_v notable_a apostat_n from_o the_o faith_n of_o christ._n how_o they_o labour_v to_o pervert_v by_o sinistrous_a translation_n of_o place_n of_o scripture_n give_v clear_a testimony_n to_o christ_n who_o be_v bear_v of_o a_o virgin_n eusebius_n declare_v lib._n 5._o cap._n 8._o the_o translation_n of_o the_o septuagint_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v behold_v a_o virgin_n shall_v conceive_v isa._n 7._o be_v translate_v by_o they_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d behold_v a_o young_a woman_n shall_v conceive_v but_o this_o bad_a translation_n of_o apostate_n christian_n and_o proselyte_n of_o the_o jew_n so_o well_o like_v of_o the_o jewish_a nation_n can_v never_o take_v place_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n because_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n in_o that_o chapter_n be_v speak_v of_o a_o miraculous_a sign_n which_o god_n will_v give_v unto_o his_o people_n to_o confirm_v their_o faith_n such_o as_o be_v the_o birth_n of_o a_o maid_n which_o indeed_o be_v a_o mitaculous_a work_n but_o the_o birth_n of_o a_o young_a woman_n clad_v with_o a_o husband_n be_v no_o miracle_n of_o scripture_n and_o tradition_n in_o the_o first_o centurie_n papias_n deceive_v by_o tradition_n sell_v into_o the_o error_n of_o the_o chiliast_n in_o the_o second_o centurie_n clemens_n alexandrinus_n stumble_v at_o the_o same_o stone_n fall_v into_o diverse_a error_n as_o have_v be_v already_o speak_v this_o present_v unto_o we_o manifest_a occasion_n to_o speak_v of_o the_o certainty_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o uncertainty_n of_o tradition_n scripture_n dite_v by_o divine_a inspiration_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o it_o 2._o tim_n 3_o be_v such_o a_o sacred_a and_o holy_a thing_n that_o to_o doubt_v of_o the_o perfection_n purity_n utility_n and_o operative_a virtue_n of_o it_o be_v notable_a blasphemy_n and_o a_o manifest_a contradiction_n to_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n speak_v by_o his_o servant_n david_n ps._n 19_o from_o the_o 7._o verse_n to_o the_o 11._o verse_n so_o that_o these_o bark_a dog_n who_o speak_v unreverent_o of_o the_o scripture_n be_v more_o worthy_a of_o a_o whip_n wherewith_o dog_n be_v drive_v out_o of_o church_n then_o of_o a_o answer_n this_o be_v the_o incorruptible_a seed_n whereby_o we_o be_v beget_v to_o be_v god_n child_n 1_o pet._n 1._o &_o the_o sincere_a milk_n whereby_o we_o be_v nourish_v in_o god_n house_n 1_o commend_v pet._n 2._o this_o be_v the_o wine_n and_o milk_n that_o god_n have_v give_v we_o without_o money_n isa._n 55._o ver_fw-la 1_o wine_n fine_a and_o purify_v isa._n 25._o ver_fw-la 6._o this_o be_v a_o mirror_n wherein_o we_o see_v the_o glorious_a image_n of_o christ_n into_o the_o which_o we_o shall_v be_v transform_v 2_o cor._n 3._o ver_fw-la 18._o this_o be_v a_o lantern_n to_o our_o foot_n a_o light_n to_o our_o path_n psal._n 119._o ver_n 105._o and_o a_o very_a diadem_n to_o the_o head_n of_o the_o woman_n that_o travail_v in_o birth_n to_o bring_v forth_o child_n to_o god_n apoc._n 12._o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v like_a unto_o the_o author_n of_o holy_a scripture_n of_o who_o moses_n say_v that_o god_n be_v fearful_a in_o praise_n exod_a 15._o ver_fw-la 11_o when_o we_o praise_v a_o mortal_a man_n it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v lest_o we_o give_v too_o much_o honour_n unto_o he_o but_o when_o we_o praise_v the_o immortal_a god_n it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v lest_o we_o hold_v back_o a_o part_n of_o his_o due_a honour_n and_o true_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o this_o point_n be_v like_a unto_o god_n himself_o when_o a_o man_n enter_v into_o a_o commendation_n of_o the_o scripture_n of_o god_n he_o have_v nothing_o to_o fear_v but_o this_o one_o thing_n that_o he_o speak_v not_o so_o reverent_o of_o it_o as_o become_v he_o to_o do_v it_o be_v the_o witness_n similitude_n of_o christ_n john_n 5._o it_o be_v the_o candle_n of_o god_n shine_v in_o a_o dark_a place_n 2._o pet_n 1._o it_o be_v the_o sword_n that_o the_o spirit_n furnish_v we_o to_o fight_v against_o spiritual_a wickedness_n ephes._n 6._o ver_n 17._o in_o a_o word_n let_v we_o be_v wise_a like_o man_n who_o find_v precious_a stone_n they_o go_v to_o the_o lapidar_n to_o try_v the_o value_n &_o virtue_n of_o the_o stone_n that_o be_v find_v for_o every_o man_n have_v not_o skill_n to_o judge_v of_o such_o precious_a thing_n so_o let_v we_o consider_v diligent_o what_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n the_o very_a penman_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v speak_v anent_o the_o write_a worde_n of_o god_n and_o we_o shall_v find_v it_o a_o pearl_n of_o infinite_a value_n matt._n work_n 13._o this_o volume_n of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o worde_n be_v one_o of_o the_o two_o principal_a book_n wherein_o we_o learn_v to_o know_v god_n as_o the_o prophet_n declare_v psal._n 19_o in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o work_v we_o know_v the_o power_n &_o divinity_n of_o god_n rom._n 1._o but_o in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n we_o know_v the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o his_o favour_n towards_o we_o in_o christ_n lesus_fw-la and_o therefore_o the_o prophet_n say_v that_o the_o statute_n of_o the_o lord_n rejoice_v the_o heart_n psal._n 19_o ver_n 8._o satan_n know_v what_o profitc_n come_v to_o man_n by_o join_v these_o two_o volume_n together_o have_v labour_v to_o separat_fw-la they_o to_o the_o end_n that_o man_n see_v the_o beauty_n of_o the_o creature_n shall_v worship_v it_o in_o stead_n of_o the_o creator_n and_o like_v as_o a_o ship_n that_o be_v spoil_v of_o a_o prudent_a pilot_n or_o similitude_n shipmaster_n it_o be_v drown_v in_o the_o sea_n even_o so_o the_o word_n of_o god_n when_o it_o direct_v not_o the_o knowledge_n that_o man_n have_v by_o the_o look_n upon_o the_o creature_n than_o man_n mal_fw-fr e_fw-la shipwreck_n of_o their_o salvation_n and_o worship_v the_o creature_n in_o place_n of_o god_n the_o creator_n of_o all_o thing_n another_o artifice_n of_o satan_n be_v to_o separat_fw-la the_o word_n and_o the_o spirit_n which_o god_n have_v join_v together_o as_o two_o unseparable_a mean_n to_o set_v up_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n in_o our_o heart_n as_o the_o separate_v prophet_n isaias_n say_v and_o i_o will_v make_v this_o
the_o 29._o b._n of_o rome_n who_o continue_v in_o that_o ministration_n 5._o year_n 6_o month_n 21_o day_n he_o live_v in_o the_o day_n of_o maxentius_n by_o who_o he_o be_v enclose_v into_o a_o filthy_a stable_n to_o the_o end_n that_o lack_v the_o salubritie_n of_o wholesome_a air_n he_o may_v be_v destroy_v with_o the_o filth_n &_o stink_n of_o the_o dung_n of_o beast_n which_o thing_n also_o come_v to_o pass_v indeed_o for_o he_o die_v in_o the_o stable_n this_o holy_a martyr_n so_o long_o as_o he_o live_v he_o make_v the_o stable_n like_o unto_o a_o sanctuary_n for_o he_o never_o intermit_v the_o holy_a exercise_n of_o prayer_n &_o fast_v and_o the_o church_n when_o peace_n be_v grant_v to_o they_o by_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n they_o build_v a_o temple_n in_o that_o same_o place_n where_o the_o stable_n have_v be_v whereinto_o marcellus_n die_v platin._n de_fw-fr vitis_fw-la the_o name_n of_o marcellus_n be_v pretermit_v by_o eusebius_n after_o marcellus_n succeed_v eusebius_n the_o 30._o b._n of_o rome_n eusebius_n and_o continue_v 6._o year_n 1_o month_n 3._o day_n in_o his_o time_n platina_n write_v that_o helena_z the_o mother_n of_o constantine_n find_v the_o cross_n of_o christ._n but_o onuphrius_n himself_o be_v compel_v to_o grant_v that_o both_o damasus_n and_o platina_n err_v in_o that_o narration_n because_o constantine_n at_o this_o time_n have_v no_o dominion_n in_o syria_n neither_o be_v he_o as_o yet_o convert_v to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ._n but_o the_o tyrant_n maximinus_n with_o great_a cruelty_n oppress_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o bound_n of_o syria_n and_o judea_n and_o therefore_o such_o as_o read_v the_o history_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n let_v they_o read_v with_o judgement_n because_o it_o be_v a_o easy_a thing_n to_o err_v if_o any_o man_n give_v such_o undoubted_a credit_n tertullian_n to_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n as_o he_o give_v to_o sacred_a scripture_n tertullian_n a_o learned_a preacher_n of_o the_o african_a province_n &_o of_o the_o city_n of_o carthage_n a_o man_n of_o a_o quick_a wit_n &_o pregnant_a engine_n flourish_v under_o the_o reign_n of_o severus_n the_o 5_o persecuter_n when_o he_o come_v to_o rome_n he_o be_fw-mi not_o free_a of_o the_o envy_n and_o reproach_n of_o the_o clergy_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o move_v with_o anger_n he_o decline_v to_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o heretic_n montanus_n &_o write_v book_n against_o the_o true_a church_n such_o as_o the_o volume_n follow_v de_fw-fr pudicitia_fw-la de_fw-fr pe●…cutione_n de_fw-fr jejun●…s_n de_fw-fr monogamia_fw-la de_fw-fr exstasi_fw-la lib._n 6._o &_o his_o 7._o book_n against_o apollonius_fw-la this_o lamentable_a defection_n of_o tertullian_n may_v be_v a_o example_n to_o all_o man_n of_o great_a understanding_n and_o excellent_a learning_n not_o to_o be_v puff_v up_o nor_o to_o be_v high_o mind_v lest_o they_o fall_v into_o the_o snare_n of_o the_o devil_n for_o tertullian_n write_v learned_a apology_n for_o the_o christian_n and_o mighty_o confute_v the_o error_n of_o martion_n notwithstanding_o of_o all_o this_o he_o be_v high_o mind_v &_o join_v himself_o to_o the_o opinion_n of_o montanus_n jerom._n catal._n script_n eccl_n if_o he_o have_v keep_v himself_o free_a of_o this_o foul_a spot_n he_o be_v worthy_a for_o his_o gift_n to_o have_v be_v count_v among_o the_o most_o famous_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n after_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n hist._n magd._n cent._n 3._o cap._n 10._o origen_n the_o son_n of_o leonides_n a_o egyptian_a be_v a_o young_a origen_n man_n of_o 17._o year_n of_o age_n when_o his_o father_n be_v martyr_v in_o the_o persecution_n of_o severus_n jerom_n catal._n script_n eccles_n his_o engine_n be_v so_o pregnant_a in_o his_o youth_n and_o so_o capable_a of_o all_o kind_n of_o instruction_n that_o his_o father_n will_v ofttimes_o uncover_v his_o breast_n when_o he_o be_v on_o sleep_n and_o kiss_v it_o give_v thanks_o to_o god_n who_o have_v make_v he_o father_n of_o so_o happy_a a_o son_n hist._n magd_n cent._n 3._o cap._n 10._o after_o his_o father_n death_n he_o sustain_v himself_o his_o mother_n &_o six_o brethren_n by_o keep_v a_o school_n for_o all_o his_o father_n good_n be_v confiscate_v for_o his_o confession_n of_o christ._n when_o origen_n have_v spend_v his_o young_a age_n the_o description_n of_o his_o life_n in_o greek_a say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v when_o he_o be_v in_o his_o mid_a age_n the_o church_n of_o achaia_n vex_v with_o heretic_n send_v for_o he_o &_o as_o he_o be_v upon_o his_o journey_n to_o athens_n he_o go_v through_o palestina_n &_o be_v ordain_v to_o be_v a_o preach_v elder_a by_o alexander_n b_o of_o jerusalem_n &_o theoctistus_n b._n of_o caesarea_n this_o fact_n offend_v demetrius_n b._n of_o alexandria_n so_o high_o that_o he_o be_v full_a of_o rage_n against_o origen_n and_o wherefore_o because_o he_o be_v a_o man_n of_o alexandria_n receive_v ordination_n to_o a_o ecclesiastical_a office_n from_o the_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o caesarea_n when_o bishop_n become_v serious_a in_o trifle_a matter_n and_o have_v a_o great_a regard_n to_o their_o own_o glo●…y_n then_o to_o the_o advancement_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n then_o that_o may_v be_v speak_v of_o they_o which_o jerom_n write_v of_o demetrius_n qui_fw-la tanta_fw-la in_o eum_fw-la debacchatus_fw-la est_fw-la insania_fw-la ut_fw-la per_fw-la totum_fw-la mundum_fw-la super_fw-la ejus_fw-la nomine_fw-la seriberet_fw-la that_o be_v he_o be_v so_o full_a of_o rage_n against_o he_o that_o he_o replenish_v the_o world_n with_o write_n mention_v the_o name_n of_o origen_n but_o consider_v what_o fault_n be_v in_o origen_n who_o be_v crave_v no_o ordination_n and_o what_o fault_n be_v in_o alexander_n and_o theoctistus_n man_n who_o name_n shall_v be_v have_v in_o everlasting_a remembrance_n they_o do_v nothing_o of_o intention_n to_o grieve_v the_o heart_n of_o demetrius_n b._n of_o alexandria_n but_o only_o be_v careful_a of_o the_o advancement_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n they_o endeavour_v to_o strengthen_v the_o hand_n of_o origen_n against_o the_o heretic_n of_o achaia_n by_o confer_v unto_o he_o the_o call_n of_o a_o presbyter_n no_o man_n can_v just_o offend_v against_o i_o if_o i_o cast_v in_o this_o sentence_n as_o a_o common_a admonition_n to_o all_o preacher_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d let_v we_o not_o be_v over_o serious_a in_o ridiculous_a matter_n the_o name_n of_o origen_n be_v so_o famous_a that_o not_o only_o the_o bishop_n of_o achaia_n solicit_v he_o to_o come_v to_o their_o bound_n for_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o heretic_n but_o also_o he_o be_v send_v for_o at_o two_o diverse_a time_n to_o be_v present_a at_o the_o council_n conucen_v in_o arabia_n against_o heretic_n some_o heretic_n affirm_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n perish_v with_o their_o body_n and_o be_v raise_v up_o again_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o resurrection_n with_o the_o body_n who_o origen_n mighty_o refute_v comment_n func_fw-la in_o chron._n lib._n 6._o likewise_o he_o be_v present_a at_o the_o council_n in_o arabia_n gather_v against_o beryllus_n b._n of_o bostra_n who_o deny_v that_o christ_n be_v existent_a before_o his_o manifestation_n in_o the_o flesh_n and_o by_o the_o travel_n of_o origen_n beryllus_n be_v reclaim_v and_o reduce_v to_o the_o true_a faith_n therefore_o i_o reckone_v he_o not_o into_o the_o roll_n of_o heretic_n euseb_n lib._n 6._o cap._n 33._o firmilianus_n b._n of_o caesarea_n in_o cappadocia_n invite_v origen_n to_o come_v to_o cappadocia_n where_o he_o detain_v he_o a_o long_a time_n likewise_o mammea_n the_o mother_n of_o alexander_n the_o emperor_n send_v for_o he_o to_o come_v to_o antiochia_n and_o have_v he_o in_o reverend_a regard_n likewise_o he_o write_v to_o the_o emperor_n philip_n and_o to_o his_o mother_n who_o be_v the_o first_o emperor_n that_o profess_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n jerom._n catal_a script_n eccl_n he_o study_v to_o be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o hebrew_n language_n far_o contrary_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o his_o own_o nation_n &_o he_o confer_v the_o hebrew_n text_n with_o the_o greek_a translation_n not_o only_o the_o septuagint_n but_o also_o the_o translation_n of_o aqvila_n theolosion_n and_o symmachus_n and_o he_o find_v out_o the_o five_o six_o and_o seven_o edition_n euseb._n lib._n 6._o cap._n 17._o jerom_n catal_a scrip_n eccles_n notwithstanding_o of_o all_o these_o excellent_a gift_n and_o renown_a fame_n of_o origen_n he_o want_v not_o his_o own_o gross_a error_n &_o foolish_a fact_n in_o expound_v of_o scripture_n he_o become_v a_o curious_a searcher_n out_o of_o allegory_n yet_o this_o father_n of_o allegory_n origen_n take_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n speak_v of_o eunuch_n there_o be_v some_o chaste_a which_o have_v make_v th●…mselues_n chaste_a for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o
heaven_n mat._n 19_o ver_fw-la 12._o these_o word_n i_o say_v speak_v in_o a_o allegorical_a sense_n he_o take_v in_o a_o simple_a and_o unfigurat_a meaning_n and_o geld_v himself_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v live_v without_o all_o suspicion_n of_o uncleanness_n euseb._n lib._n 6._o cap._n 8._o no_o learned_a man_n have_v commend_v this_o fact_n of_o origen_n so_o far_o as_o my_o read_n can_v extend_v for_o if_o a_o man_n may_v lawful_o dismember_v his_o own_o body_n to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o may_v live_v chaste_o why_o may_v not_o a_o man_n in_o like_a manner_n cut_v off_o his_o own_o hand_n to_o the_o end_n he_o shall_v not_o in_o hasty_a motion_n of_o anger_n kill_v his_o neighbour_n but_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n be_v seat_v in_o the_o heart_n and_o more_o commend_v for_o voluntary_a subjection_n then_o for_o necessity_n of_o abstinence_n of_o commit_v evil_a because_o there_o be_v not_o a_o instrument_n in_o the_o body_n able_a to_o commit_v transgression_n final_o by_o seek_v of_o divinity_n without_o the_o bound_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o god_n in_o stead_n of_o true_a divinity_n he_o be_v entangle_v with_o foolish_a error_n anent_o the_o creation_n of_o many_o world_n one_o succeed_v to_o another_o anent_o the_o pain_n of_o devil_n and_o wicked_a man_n after_o long_a torment_n to_o be_v finish_v and_o anent_o the_o possibility_n of_o man_n nature_n to_o keep_v the_o whole_a law_n of_o god_n for_o which_o opinion_n long_o after_o his_o death_n he_o be_v excommunicate_a in_o the_o 5_o general_a council_n hold_v ann_n 551._o concern_v his_o weakness_n in_o offer_v to_o idol_n rather_o than_o to_o suffer_v his_o chaste_a body_n to_o be_v abuse_v i_o have_v speak_v in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o 7._o persecution_n he_o live_v until_o the_o day_n of_o gallus_n &_o volusianus_n &_o die_v in_o the_o 69._o year_n of_o his_o age_n in_o the_o town_n of_o tyrus_n where_o he_o be_v also_o bury_v cyprian_n be_v a_o african_a bear_v in_o carthage_n in_o his_o youth_n altogether_o cyprian_a give_v to_o the_o study_n &_o practice_v of_o magical_a art_n his_o conversion_n be_v by_o the_o mean_n ofcecilivs_fw-la a_o preacher_n who_o name_n after_o he_o bear_v and_o through_o occasion_n of_o hear_v the_o history_n of_o the_o prophet_n jonah_n jerom_n catal_a script_n eccles_n &_o jerom._n comment_n in_o jonam_fw-la after_o his_o conversion_n he_o distribute_v all_o his_o substance_n to_o the_o poor_a jerom._n ibid._n and_o become_v first_o a_o preach_v elder_n and_o afterward_o bishop_n of_o carthage_n he_o be_v banish_v in_o the_o persecution_n of_o decius_n and_o martyr_v under_o valerian_n nazianz_n in_o laudem_fw-la cypriani_fw-la the_o worthy_a d._n i._o fox_n think_v that_o nazianzen_n commend_v another_o bishop_n of_o that_o same_o name_n bear_v in_o antiochia_n and_o bishop_n in_o antiochia_n who_o suffer_v martyrdom_n in_o the_o day_n of_o diocletian_n this_o cyprian_a b._n of_o carthage_n be_v a_o man_n full_a of_o love_n a_o great_a comforter_n of_o cornelius_n b._n of_o rome_n he_o suffer_v martyrdom_n as_o jerom_n write_v that_o same_o day_n albeit_o not_o in_o that_o same_o year_n that_o cornelius_n conclude_v his_o life_n by_o glorious_a martyrdom_n jerom_n catal._n script_n eccles_n he_o have_v great_a strife_n against_o two_o contrary_a sect_n viz._n against_o novatus_n who_o be_v excessive_a rigorous_a against_o those_o who_o have_v fall_v in_o time_n of_o persecution_n and_o against_o novatianus_n &_o felicissimus_fw-la who_o by_o the_o contrary_n will_v have_v have_v both_o heretic_n and_o apostat_n receive_v without_o all_o form_n of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n hist._n magd_n cent_z 3._o cap._n 10._o he_o esteem_v much_o of_o those_o who_o suffer_v rebuke_v for_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n &_o he_o say_v of_o the_o mettle_n mine_n and_o those_o that_o be_v condemn_v for_o christ_n sake_n to_o work_v in_o they_o that_o whereas_o they_o be_v wont_a to_o deliver_v gold_n and_o silver_n and_o precious_a thing_n unto_o the_o world_n no_o we_o by_o the_o contrary_a the_o mine_n receive_v gold_n and_o silver_n and_o the_o most_o precious_a thing_n in_o the_o world_n count_v the_o confessor_n and_o martyr_n of_o christ_n the_o rich_a treasure_n of_o the_o earth_n of_o who_o the_o world_n be_v not_o worthy_a his_o opinion_n anent_o rebaptise_v such_o as_o be_v baptize_v by_o heretic_n albeit_o it_o be_v erroneous_a yet_o his_o modesty_n in_o not_o damn_v they_o rash_o who_o be_v of_o a_o contrary_a opinion_n be_v great_a lie_n praise_v by_o s._n austen_n who_o say_v that_o the_o modesty_n of_o cyprian_a in_o his_o error_n be_v mo●…e_a to_o be_v regard_v then_o a_o sound_n &_o right_a opinion_n anent_o baptism_n without_o humility_n &_o modesty_n august_n de_fw-fr baptis_n contra_fw-la donat._n lib._n 5._o cap._n 17._o he_o be_v a_o faithful_a builder_n of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n not_o by_o word_n only_o but_o also_o by_o write_v and_o his_o book_n remain_v until_o this_o day_n as_o a_o precious_a treasure_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n the_o book_n de_fw-fr revelatione_fw-la capitis_fw-la joannis_n baptista_n be_v supposititious_a because_o in_o it_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o the_o reverence_n that_o pipinus_n king_n of_o france_n do_v to_o the_o head_n of_o john_n baptist_n when_o it_o be_v transport_v from_o constantinople_n to_o france_n and_o it_o be_v know_v that_o pipinus_n be_v not_o bear_v three_o hundred_o year_n after_o the_o martyrdom_n of_o cyprian_a how_o then_o can_v cyprian_n write_v of_o a_o fact_n do_v so_o long_a time_n after_o his_o death_n the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v multiply_v under_o the_o persecution_n of_o severus_n maximinus_n decius_n valerian_n aurelian_a &_o diocletian_n all_o these_o six_o persecution_n be_v comprehend_v in_o the_o three_o centurie_n in_o jerusalem_n be_v narcissus_n against_o who_o wicked_a man_n band_v themselves_o together_o with_o forge_a accusation_n and_o false_a testimony_n seal_v up_o with_o oath_n and_o imprecation_n to_o grieve_v the_o heart_n of_o narcissus_n in_o so_o much_o that_o he_o leave_v his_o call_n and_o flee_v to_o the_o wilderness_n where_o he_o jurk_v a_o long_a time_n but_o the_o false_a witness_n who_o bare_a testimony_n against_o he_o escape_v not_o the_o punishment_n of_o god_n one_o of_o they_o and_o his_o whole_a family_n and_o substance_n be_v burn_v with_o sudden_a fire_n another_o of_o they_o be_v strike_v with_o a_o heavy_a disease_n such_o as_o he_o himself_o in_o his_o imprecation_n have_v wish_v unto_o himself_o the_o three_o be_v terrify_v with_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n that_o light_v upon_o the_o other_o two_o and_o he_o repent_v and_o pour_v out_o the_o grief_n of_o his_o dolorous_a heart_n in_o such_o abundance_n of_o tear_n that_o he_o become_v blind_a all_o these_o false_a witness_n be_v punish_v euseb._n lib_n 6._o cap_n 9_o and_o he_o who_o be_v penitent_a albeit_o the_o lord_n pardon_v his_o sin_n yet_o he_o chastise_v he_o with_o temporal_a punishment_n the_o bishop_n of_o the_o next_o adjacent_a church_n because_o they_o know_v not_o what_o be_v become_v of_o narcissus_n they_o admit_v another_o call_v dios_n who_o continue_v but_o a_o short_a time_n to_o he_o succeed_v germanion_n and_o after_o germanion_n gordius_n in_o who_o time_n narcissus_n manifest_v himself_o again_o to_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n who_o request_v he_o to_o undertake_v his_o office_n again_o for_o they_o reverence_v he_o as_o a_o man_n raise_v from_o death_n to_o life_n again_o and_o the_o punishment_n of_o god_n inflict_v upon_o his_o accuser_n increass_v their_o reverence_n towards_o he_o he_o be_v old_a and_o not_o able_a to_o discharge_v the_o weighty_a office_n of_o a_o bishop_n theresore_n alexander_n a_o worthy_a man_n be_v join_v as_o fellow-labourer_n with_o he_o eusebius_n write_v that_o he_o be_v admonish_v by_o a_o celestial_a vision_n of_o the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n with_o narcissus_n for_o he_o have_v be_v bishop_n of_o another_o parochin_n before_o in_o cappadocia_n by_o the_o like_a celestial_a vision_n narcissus_n and_o other_o of_o the_o clergy_n be_v admonish_v that_o the_o day_n next_o follow_v a_o bishop_n shall_v enter_v into_o jerusalem_n who_o god_n have_v appoint_v to_o be_v a_o helper_n to_o narcissus_n jerom_n catal._n scrip_n eccl_n he_o defend_v origen_n against_o the_o fury_n and_o madness_n of_o demetrius_n b._n of_o alexandria_n who_o set_v both_o himself_o and_o other_o to_o great_a business_n for_o a_o matter_n of_o no_o importance_n as_o say_v be_v jerom_n ibid._n in_o the_o persecution_n of_o decius_n he_o be_v carry_v to_o caesarea_n close_v into_o a_o dark_a prison_n and_o die_v a_o martyr_n as_o have_v be_v declare_v alexander_n be_v suppon_v till_o have_v be_v the_o 35._o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n
tear_n the_o foreskin_n of_o his_o circumcision_n the_o crown_n of_o thorn_n the_o spear_n that_o pierce_v his_o side_n the_o lot_n that_o be_v cast_v for_o his_o garment_n the_o linen_n clothes_n whereinto_o his_o bless_a body_n be_v wrap_v all_o these_o relic_n the_o roman_a church_n brag_v that_o they_o have_v they_o together_o with_o the_o very_a house_n of_o bethleam_n wherein_o the_o lord_n be_v bear_v miraculous_o transport_v from_o judea_n to_o italy_n so_o impudent_a be_v they_o in_o forge_v lie_n but_o if_o all_o these_o thing_n have_v be_v leave_v by_o christ_n in_o testamental_a legacy_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n they_o have_v not_o be_v so_o careful_a in_o keep_v of_o they_o as_o the_o negligent_a keep_n of_o the_o purity_n of_o the_o word_n &_o holy_a sacrament_n clear_o declare_v for_o they_o have_v lose_v the_o key_n of_o knowledge_n they_o have_v add_v many_o thing_n to_o baptism_n and_o pair_v a_o substantial_a part_n from_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o no_o doubt_n if_o the_o forename_a relic_n have_v be_v leave_v in_o testament_n also_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n like_a unto_o false_a executer_n they_o have_v make_v havoc_n of_o these_o in_o like_a manner_n the_o false_a relic_n attribute_v to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n the_o mother_n of_o our_o lord_n to_z michael_z the_o archangel_n and_o to_o the_o martyr_n &_o saint_n some_o of_o they_o have_v such_o babish_a conceit_n in_o they_o other_o such_o absurdity_n as_o it_o be_v a_o shame_n to_o make_v rehearsal_n of_o they_o if_o so_o be_v we_o have_v not_o to_o do_v with_o a_o shameless_a harlot_n who_o have_v dight_v her_o mouth_n &_o say_v i_o have_v commit_v none_o iniquity_n prou_z 30._o ver_fw-la 20._o the_o virgin_n hair_n in_o quantity_n more_o than_o be_v beseem_v to_o attribute_v to_o one_o person_n her_o milk_n in_o quality_n better_o than_o be_v beseem_v to_o attribute_v to_o any_o mortal_a creature_n her_o comb_n wherewith_o she_o comb_v her_o hair_n her_o girdle_n &_o many_o other_o relic_n unknown_a to_o antiquity_n in_o the_o strife_n of_o michael_n the_o archangel_n of_o god_n against_o the_o devil_n for_o the_o body_n of_o moses_n epist_n jud._n ver_fw-la 9_o the_o dagger_n and_o shield_n wherewith_o he_o fight_v be_v among_o the_o number_n of_o popish_a relic_n as_o if_o satan_n can_v be_v overcome_v with_o the_o weapon_n of_o corporal_a warfarc_n when_o as_o man_n themselves_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n to_o fight_v against_o spiritual_a wickedness_n with_o spiritual_a armour_n ephes._n 6._o the_o coal_n of_o s._n laurence_n the_o incorruptible_a finger_n of_o john_n baptist_n that_o point_v out_o christ_n the_o iron_n chain_n that_o bind_v peter_n the_o tooth_n of_o apollonia_n the_o body_n of_o s._n dionise_v complete_a alege_v to_o be_v both_o in_o france_n &_o germany_n the_o multiply_a body_n of_o s._n sebastian_z &_o innumerable_a other_o forge_a relic_n whereof_o they_o who_o have_v invent_v they_o have_v cause_n to_o be_v ashamed_a and_o what_o shall_v we_o say_v of_o the_o superlative_a degree_n of_o all_o absurdity_n in_o defend_v forge_a relic_n the_o arrow_n that_o pierce_v s._n sebastian_z the_o stone_n that_o stone_v s._n stephan_n the_o 30._o piece_n of_o money_n which_o the_o traitor_n judas_n receive_v to_o betray_v his_o master_n shall_v all_o these_o also_o be_v consecrate_v &_o worship_v simon_n magus_n money_n be_v curse_v &_o execrable_a as_o well_o as_o himself_o act_n 8._o 20._o because_o he_o think_v that_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n can_v be_v buy_v with_o money_n shall_v not_o the_o 30._o piece_n of_o money_n wherewith_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v buy_v be_v also_o curse_v &_o execrable_a now_o we_o see_v in_o our_o time_n a_o filthy_a stable_n full_a of_o forge_a reiique_n &_o more_o filthy_a than_o ever_o the_o stable_n of_o augias_n king_n of_o elis_n be_v which_o couldby_o no_o other_o mean_n be_v purge_v but_o by_o the_o river_n of_o alpheus_n which_o be_v let_v in_o into_o the_o stable_a the_o great_a heap_n of_o 30_o year_n dung_n be_v in_o few_o day_n wash_v away_o even_o so_o the_o great_a heap_n of_o forge_a relic_n wherewith_o the_o world_n have_v be_v bewitch_v these_o many_o hundred_o year_n can_v by_o no_o other_o mean_n be_v abolish_v but_o by_o the_o spate_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o godly_a prince_n who_o heart_n the_o lord_n stir_v up_o to_o purge_v the_o world_n from_o the_o filth_n &_o stink_n of_o false_a relic_n by_o false_a teacher_n so_o obstinate_o defend_v the_o best_a remedy_n to_o correct_v all_o abuse_n in_o the_o church_n be_v ever_o this_o to_o reduce_v all_o thing_n unto_o the_o first_o &_o original_a purity_n which_o be_v this_o to_o do_v as_o the_o man_n of_o god_n in_o the_o apostle_n day_n do_v they_o follow_v the_o saint_n in_o so_o far_o as_o the_o saint_n follow_v christ_n 1._o cor._n 11._o if_o the_o saint_n depart_v this_o life_n they_o bury_v they_o honest_o as_o devote_v man_n do_v bury_v stephan_n act._n 8_o 2._o with_o some_o lamentation_n but_o not_o excessiué_fw-fr as_o they_o do_v who_o be_v without_o hope_n 1._o thess._n 4._o 13_o after_o their_o death_n if_o they_o remember_v any_o good_a they_o have_v do_v in_o their_o life-time_n they_o commend_v it_o that_o other_o may_v follow_v their_o example_n because_o christ_n say_v that_o the_o fact_n of_o marie_n shall_v be_v tell_v for_o a_o memorial_n of_o she_o &_o that_o in_o all_o place_n whersoever_o the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v teach_v mat._n 26._o ver_fw-la 13._o if_o they_o have_v patient_o suffer_v any_o evil_n for_o christ_n sake_n they_o keep_v a_o memorial_n of_o that_o also_o as_o the_o godly_a father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n do_v in_o natalitus_fw-la martyrum_fw-la thus_o do_v we_o honour_v the_o saint_n and_o follow_v they_o as_o they_o follow_v christ_n but_o we_o clothe_v they_o not_o with_o the_o royal_a apparel_n which_o be_v only_o due_a to_o christ_n to_o who_o be_v everlasting_a glory_n and_o honour_n amen_n cent_z 3._o a_o treatise_n of_o the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n albeit_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o open_o proclaim_v to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o bishop_n until_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 607._o by_o the_o emperor_n phocas_n yet_o be_v this_o supremacy_n colour_v with_o forge_a lie_n &_o appearance_n of_o great_a antiquity_n &_o for_o refutation_n of_o allege_a antiquity_n i_o cast_v in_o this_o treatise_n in_o the_o three_o centurie_n and_o first_o of_o all_o let_v we_o consider_v the_o ground_n of_o this_o allege_a supremacy_n next_o let_v we_o consider_v the_o step_n of_o this_o ladder_n not_o like_a to_o the_o ladder_n of_o jacob_n lead_v up_o to_o heaven_n but_o like_a to_o the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n whereby_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n by_o little_a &_o little_o clim_v up_o unto_o this_o soveraignitie_n that_o in_o end_n he_o sit_v as_o a_o lawgiver_n in_o the_o chair_n of_o christ._n and_o three_o god-willing_o we_o shall_v declare_v the_o tragical_a event_n of_o this_o supremacy_n now_o first_o the_o principal_a ground_n whereupon_o papist_n do_v ground_n the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o supremacy_n of_o peter_n antichrist_n above_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o if_o it_o be_v grant_n they_o will_v infer_v the_o superiority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o his_o successor_n above_o all_o bishop_n in_o this_o argument_n i_o perceive_v great_a business_n to_o advance_v the_o antichrist_n and_o to_o set_v he_o up_o into_o a_o eminent_a chair_n like_z as_o when_o christ_n be_v bear_v there_o be_v great_a business_n to_o make_v he_o out_o of_o the_o way_n mat._n 2._o but_o all_o in_o vain_a the_o cruelty_n and_o craft_n of_o herod_n can_v un_o do_v the_o counsel_n of_o god_n so_o great_a business_n be_v to_o advance_v the_o roman_a antichrist_n and_o to_o make_v we_o believe_v that_o christ_n himself_o have_v set_v he_o in_o his_o own_o chair_n &_o give_v unto_o he_o a_o sovereign_a government_n over_o all_o his_o sheep_n but_o all_o this_o travail_n be_v also_o take_v in_o vain_a for_o the_o room_n of_o christ_n must_v not_o be_v fill_v until_o it_o be_v vacant_a &_o the_o breath_n of_o christ_n mouth_n destroy_v the_o man_n of_o sin_n will_v one_o day_n declare_v that_o christ_n be_v live_v sit_v in_o his_o own_o chair_n and_o mighty_a in_o operation_n to_o make_v his_o enemy_n his_o footstool_n psal._n 110_o now_o to_o examine_v the_o part_n of_o this_o argument_n the_o first_o part_n be_v peter_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o this_o they_o prove_v rest_n by_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n i_o will_v give_v unto_o thou_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n mat._n 16._o in_o the_o
contrary_n we_o affirm_v that_o if●…in_o these_o word_n christ_n have_v give_v any_o supremacy_n to_o peter_n above_o the_o rest_n than_o afterward_o when_o they_o strive_v who_o shall_v be_v great_a christ_n have_v not_o damn_v this_o fault_n in_o all_o his_o disciple_n but_o he_o have_v only_o damn_v the_o eleven_o disciple_n for_o that_o they_o be_v not_o voluntarly_a subject_n to_o peter_n who_o he_o have_v already_o make_v head_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n but_o in_o so_o far_o as_o strive_v for_o superiority_n be_v damn_v in_o they_o all_o mat._n 18._o it_o be_v certain_a that_o christ_n appoint_v none_o of_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v supreme_a head_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o cypri_n a_o plain_o affirm_v in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr simplicitate_fw-la praelatorum_fw-la hoc_fw-la erant_fw-la utique_fw-la 〈◊〉_d &_o cateri_fw-la apostoli_fw-la quodfuit_fw-la petrus_n pari_fw-la consortio_fw-la praediti_fw-la &_o honoris_fw-la &_o potestatis_fw-la that_o be_v all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v that_o same_o thing_n that_o peter_n be_v furnish_v with_o like_a fellowship_n and_o honour_n the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o argument_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o successor_n of_o peter_n have_v be_v already_o entreat_v in_o the_o head_n of_o succession_n another_o argument_n prove_v the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o roman_a false_a bishop_n be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o decretal_a epistle_n attribute_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o live_v in_o the_o second_o centurie_n make_v mention_n of_o the_o superiority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n above_o all_o other_o bishop_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o these_o epistle_n attribute_v unto_o they_o be_v supposititious_a and_o false_a as_o hist._n magdeburg_n clear_o prove_v by_o many_o reason_n whereof_o i_o shall_v rehearse_v a_o few_o first_o the_o stile_n and_o 1._o ditement_n of_o all_o these_o epistle_n declare_v that_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_a man_n have_v indict_v they_o all_o second_o the_o ineptitude_n and_o barbarity_n of_o language_n no_o wise_a agree_v with_o the_o tightnesse_n of_o the_o latin_a tongue_n use_v in_o 2._o this_o age_n three_o these_o decretal_a epistle_n agree_v not_o with_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n at_o that_o time_n persecute_v by_o tyrant_n trouble_v 3_o by_o heretic_n &_o slander_v by_o the_o world_n if_o these_o forename_a bishop_n have_v write_v epistle_n indeed_o they_o have_v contain_v exhortation_n to_o patient_a suffer_v apology_n against_o slanderous_a mouth_n refutation_n of_o heretic_n but_o see_v they_o sound_v for_o the_o most_o part_n to_o the_o establish_n of_o their_o own_o supremacy_n the_o very_a circumstance_n of_o time_n declare_v that_o they_o be_v supposititious_a &_o forge_a four_o the_o reason_n whereby_o these_o epistle_n do_v prove_v the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o roman_a chair_n be_v foolish_a ridiculous_a 4_o &_o unworthy_a to_o be_v attribute_v to_o so_o worthy_a man_n as_o namely_o that_o peter_n be_v call_v cephas_n that_o be_v a_o head_n for_o his_o supremacy_n likewise_o peter_n and_o paul_n die_v at_o rome_n therefore_o the_o roman_a b._n be_v head_n of_o all_o other_o bishop_n also_o paul_n say_v that_o he_o have_v continual_a remembrance_n of_o the_o roman_n in_o his_o prayer_n rom._n 1._o therefore_o the_o roman_a church_n must_v be_v head_n of_o all_o other_o church_n five_o these_o decretal_a epistle_n be_v unknown_a to_o justinus_n martyr_n ireneus_n clemens_n alexandrinus_n who_o live_v about_o 5._o this_o time_n as_o likewise_o to_o jerome_n a_o accurate_a searcher_n of_o all_o a_o tiquity_n for_o none_o of_o they_o make_v mention_n of_o these_o decretal_a epistle_n six_o when_o the_o question_n of_o appellation_n to_o the_o roman_a bishop_n and_o the_o question_n of_o supremacy_n be_v reason_v in_o the_o 6._o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n if_o such_o decretal_a epistle_n have_v be_v then_o exstant_fw-la the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v allege_v they_o for_o corroboration_n of_o their_o cause_n but_o they_o be_v not_o as_o yet_o fashion_v and_o shape_v final_o in_o these_o decretal_a epistle_n clemens_n b._n of_o rome_n be_v bring_v in_o write_v to_o james_n surname_v justus_n after_o the_o death_n of_o peter_n &_o it_o be_v know_v by_o the_o history_n that_o james_n surname_v justus_n be_v slay_v at_o the_o least_o 8._o year_n before_o the_o martyrdom_n of_o peter_n for_o james_n be_v slay_v before_o nero_n intend_v his_o persecution_n but_o peter_n be_v martyr_v in_o the_o very_a furic_n of_o nero_n persecution_n joseph_n antiq_n i._o 20._o c._n 8_o euseb._n i_o 2._o c_o 23_o &_o 25._o the_o 3._o principal_a argument_n they_o use_v be_v take_v from_o the_o utility_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n whereinto_o unity_n be_v very_o requisite_a joh._n 17._o &_o for_o keep_v of_o unity_n one_o ministerial_a head_n under_o christ_n be_v necessary_a like_v as_o in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n one_o high_a priest_n to_o who_o all_o the_o people_n be_v subject_a in_o matter_n of_o religion_n be_v a_o band_n of_o unity_n among_o the_o jew_n even_o so_o say_v they_o one_o ministerial_a head_n viz._n the_o b._n of_o rome_n be_v necessary_a for_o keep_v unity_n peace_n &_o concord_n among_o christians-to_a this_o i_o answer_v that_o all_o thing_n happen_v to_o they_o in_o figure_n 1._o cor._n 10._o and_o like_a as_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o jew_n have_v one_o high_a priest_n as_o a_o band_n of_o unity_n so_o likewise_o they_o have_v one_o altar_n &_o one_o city_n of_o their_o convention_n isa._n 33_o &_o these_o also_o be_v band_n of_o unity_n to_o keep_v the_o nation_n of_o the_o jew_n into_o a_o holy_a fellowship_n yet_o no_o man_n will_v say_v that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o we_o in_o our_o day_n to_o resort_v thrice_o in_o the_o year_n to_o any_o one_o city_n for_o keep_v the_o unity_n of_o christ_n no_o more_o be_v it_o necessary_a in_o our_o day_n for_o keep_v of_o unity_n to_o have_v one_o high_a priest_n upon_o who_o we_o shall_v all_o depend_v but_o rather_o this_o be_v a_o figure_n as_o say_v be_v teach_v we_o to_o depend_v upon_o jesus_n christ_n the_o great_a b●…shop_n of_o our_o soul_n because_o we_o be_v all_o member_n of_o his_o body_n we_o be_v quicken_v with_o his_o spirit_n we_o have_v one_o hope_v of_o call_v we_o have_v one_o faith_n &_o one_o baptism_n eph._n 4._o these_o be_v the_o band_n of_o our_o conjunction_n both_o with_o christ_n our_o head_n &_o with_o his_o member_n but_o the_o apostle_n paul_n in_o reckon_v out_o the_o band_n of_o our_o conjunction_n with_o christ_n and_o among_o ourselves_o speak_v nothing_o of_o one_o ministerial_a head_n underchrist_n neither_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o there_o can_v be_v on●…_n ministerial_a head_n in_o all_o the_o world_n as_o there_o be_v one_o high_a priest_n in_o one_o nation_n of_o the_o jew_n the_o second_o head_n of_o this_o treatise_n be_v to_o consider_v the_o step_n &_o degree_n whereby_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n be_v mount_v up_o in_o the_o chair_n of_o christ._n 1._o the_o honourable_a style_n attribute_v by_o other_o church_n step_n unto_o the_o chair_n of_o rome_n begin_v to_o puff_v up_o some_o of_o they_o into_o great_a conceit_n of_o themselves_o the_o chair_n of_o rome_n be_v call_v the_o apostolic_a chair_n &_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n be_v call_v the_o universal_a bishop_n such_o honourable_a style_n by_o hyperbolical_a speech_n give_v unto_o they_o shall_v not_o have_v puff_v they_o up_o in_o pride_n to_o conceit_n supremacy_n over_o all_o other_o bishop_n because_o the_o like_a style_n of_o dignity_n be_v attribute_v to_o other_o bishop_n and_o other_o chair_n who_o never_o usurp_v superio●…itie_n over_o all_o church_n nazianz._n in_o laudem_fw-la cypriani_fw-la say_v that_o he_o be_v count_v in_o his_o time_n not_o only_o a_o govern_v our_o of_o the_o church_n of_o carthage_n and_o of_o all_o africa_a &_o of_o all_o the_o region_n of_o the_o west_n but_o also_o of_o all_o the_o east_n &_o south_n &_o north._n the_o like_a be_v write_v of_o athanasius_n nazian_n in_o lauden_a athanas●…_n the_o like_a also_o the_o emperorconstan_n tine_n speak_v of_o eusebius_n pamphilib_n of_o caesarea_n palestinae_n when_o he_o refuse_v the_o bishopric_n of_o antiochia_n in_o this_o say_v constan_n tine_n to_o eusebius_n thou_o be_v bless_v that_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o world_n thou_o be_v think_v worthy_a to_o be_v b._n of_o the_o whole_a church_n euseb._n invita_fw-la constantn_n l._n 3._o c._n 59_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o neithercyprian_a nor_o athanasius_n nor_o eusebius_n be_v puff_v up_o in_o pride_n to_o think_v more_o of_o themselves_o then_o become_v the_o humble_a dispensator_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o god_n here_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o similitude_n of_o basilius_n that_o a_o good_a christian_n shall_v be_v like_a simil._n unto_o a_o
the_o excessive_a commendation_n of_o it_o &_o that_o through_o manifold_a defection_n 11_o both_o in_o doctrine_n and_o manner_n that_o fall_v out_o among_o monk_n first_o they_o become_v both_o inventor_n and_o propagator_n of_o heresy_n aud●…i_n otherwise_o call_v anthropomorp●…itae_n who_o suppose_v god_n 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v fashion_v according_a to_o the_o similitude_n of_o a_o man_n with_o head_n arm_n leg_n foot_n and_o other_o member_n proportionallie_o 10_o agree_v to_o the_o similitude_n of_o a_o man_n body_n these_o heretic_n i_o say_v first_o spring_v up_o in_o the_o wilderness_n of_o nitria_n eustachius_n bishop_n of_o sebastia_n in_o armenia_n albeit_o he_o be_v not_o a_o monk_n yet_o he_o be_v a_o admirer_n of_o the_o monastic_a life_n and_o afterward_o be_v condemn_v as_o a_o obstinate_a heretic_n in_o the_o council_n of_o ancyra_n marathonius_n who_o have_v be_v a_o thesaurer_n in_o the_o day_n of_o ancyr_n the_o emperor_n constantius_n and_o furnish_v money_n to_o the_o emperor_n soldier_n in_o end_n become_v rich_a &_o by_o advice_n of_o eustachius_n bishop_n of_o sebastia_n in_o armenia_n he_o build_v a_o monastrie_n in_o constantinople_n 27_o where_o he_o propagate_v the_o heresy_n of_o macedonius_n which_o have_v be_v quench_v in_o constantinople_n if_o maratbonius_fw-la under_o 11_o pretence_n of_o religion_n have_v not_o propagate_v it_o moreover_o the_o heresy_n of_o messaliani_n and_o euchytae_fw-la do_v so_o overspreade_a in_o monastries_n that_o letoi●…s_n bishop_n of_o meletina_n find_v no_o better_a mean_a to_o suppress_v this_o heresy_n then_o by_o drive_v the_o monk_n out_o of_o their_o cloister_n and_o set_v the_o monastry_n on_o fire_n likewise_o amphiloc●…ius_n bishop_n of_o iconium_n in_o lycaonia_n and_o flavianus_n bishop_n of_o antiochia_n with_o great_a fight_n and_o wress_n hardly_o can_v get_v these_o heretic_n in_o their_o bound_n discover_v and_o subdue_v and_o eutyches_n who_o error_n like_o a_o cankerworm_n so_o long_a time_n molest_v the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v he_o not_o a_o abbot_n in_o constantinople●…_n poly●…_n also_o a_o ridiculous_a monk_n obstinate_o defend_v the_o heresy_n of_o the_o monoth●…tes_n in_o the_o fix_a general_n council_n 6_o and_o offer_v to_o confirm_v that_o doctrine_n with_o a_o miraculous_a work_n but_o with_o shame_n and_o confusion_n he_o succumb_v and_o be_v curs●…d_v by_o the_o council_n moreover_o monk_n be_v the_o chief_a defender_n of_o the_o adoration_n of_o image_n and_o in_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nue_n worship_v of_o image_n be_v prove_v by_o a_o confabulation_n betwixt_o the_o devil_n &_o a_o monk_n and_o by_o another_o foolish_a dialogue_n imaginibus_fw-la betwixt_o a_o monk_n &_o his_o abbot_n this_o be_v the_o first_o great_a dash_n that_o the_o monastic●…e_n life_n get_v that_o many_o of_o they_o be_v find_v rather_o propagator_n of_o heresy_n than_o defender_n of_o the_o truth_n corruption_n of_o manner_n among_o the_o monk_n begin_v at_o disobedience_n to_o their_o superior_n of_o old_a the_o convent_n be_v very_o obedient_a to_o their_o governor_n who_o some_o time_n be_v call_v prepositus_fw-la afterward_o archimandrita_n and_o last_o abbess_n and_o the_o governor_n be_v obedient_a to_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o bishop_n to_o the_o emperor_n and_o his_o deputy_n nevertheless_o under_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o emperor_n a●…cadius_n the_o monk_n of_o egypt_n go_v forth_o out_o of_o their_o 7_o monastry_n and_o come_v to_o alexandria_n of_o purpose_n to_o slay_v their_o bishop_n theophilus●…_n which_o thing_n also_o they_o have_v perform_v if_o so_o be_v that_o by_o subtlety_n of_o flatter_a word_n he_o have_v not_o mitigate_v their_o anger_n as_o be_v a●…eadie_o declare_v in_o like_a manner_n the_o monk_n of_o nitria_n to_o the_o number_n of_o 500_o come_v out_o of_o the_o wilderness_n to_o alexandria_n not_o against_o their_o b._n cyrillus_n but_o against_o orestes_n the_o deputy_n 14_o of_o the_o emper._n theodosius_n who_o they_o both_o outbray_v and_o wound_v and_o the_o monk_n ammonius_n who_o wound_v the_o deputy_n be_v deserve_o punish_v to_o the_o death_n for_o his_o seditious_a attempt_n yet_o be_v he_o commend_v by_o cyrillus_n and_o count_v a_o martyr_n but_o with_o the_o great_a dislike_n of_o good_a christian_n who_o hate_v seditious_a enterprise_n against_o lawful_a magistrate_n also_o the_o seditious_a monk_n of_o constantinople_n who_o insolency_n 9_o john_n chrysostome_n 〈◊〉_d to_o correct_v they_o slander_v he_o as_o a_o senere_fw-la angri●…_n fi●…ce_n and_o proud_a man_n and_o open_v the_o first_o door_n to_o his_o trouble_n so_o that_o his_o hateful_a enemy_n both_o in_o court_n and_o church_n be_v encourage_v by_o their_o mean_n to_o procure_v his_o deposition_n banishment_n and_o death_n likewise_o the_o monk_n of_o nova_n laura_n in_o jerusalem_n who_o for_o heretical_a opinion_n be_v drive_v out_o of_o their_o monastry_n by_o their_o own_o bishop_n eustochius_n they_o become_v very_o seditious_a and_o stir_v up_o horrible_a contention_n betwixt_o theodorus_n ascidas_n bishop_n of_o caesarea_n in_o cappadocia_n and_o eustochius_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n no_o contention_n ha●…_n be_v more_o pernicious_a in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n than_o this_o th●…odorus_n be_v in_o great_a favour_n with_o the_o emperor_n justi●…an_fw-mi if_o the_o five_o general_n council_n have_v not_o stay_v 38_o all_o the_o attempt_n of_o theodorus_n by_o comdemn_v the_o heretical_a opinion_n of_o origin_n which_o both_o the_o monk_n of_o nova_n laura_n and_o theodorus_n as●…das_n do_v maintain_v final_o the_o monk_n become_v so_o contentious_a &_o seditious_a that_o not_o only_o they_o contend_v against_o their_o superior_n but_o also_o they_o contend_v among_o themselves_o with_o unsupportable_a hatred_n and_o even_o in_o the_o wilderness_n of_o ●…tria_n 7_o where_o their_o great_a fame_n and_o commendation_n do_v spring_v up_o in_o that_o same_o place_n the_o fame_n and_o beauty_n of_o the_o monastic_a life_n do_v fade_v and_o wither_v beside_o heresy_n and_o contention_n other_o corruption_n of_o manner_n stain_v and_o deface_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o monastic_a life_n namely_o a_o inclination_n to_o idleness_n abstinence_n from_o manual_a labour_n &_o heap_v up_o of_o riches_n which_o they_o gather_v of_o the_o sweat_n of_o other_o man_n labour_n and_o this_o appear_v clear_o by_o the_o write_n of_o 23_o augustine_n who_o not_o only_o testify_v that_o the_o monk_n of_o his_o day_n so_o do_v but_o also_o they_o defend_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o they_o to_o be_v idle_a because_o christ_n say_v in_o the_o gospel_n 〈◊〉_d the_o fowl_n of_o heaven_n for_o they_o sow_v not_o neither_o reap_v neither_o carry_v into_o 26_o the_o barn_n yet_o your_o heavenly_a father_n feed_v they_o be_v you_o not_o much_o better_a than_o they_o against_o who_o idlen●…sse_n augustine_n most_o sharp_o enuei_v say_v that_o by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o fowl_n of_o heaven_n they_o can_v learn_v idlen●…sse_n but_o they_o will_v not_o imitate_v the_o fowl_n of_o heaven_n in_o carry_v nothing_o into_o the_o barn_n but_o they_o will_v lay_v up_o in_o barn_n and_o provision_n house_n those_o riches_n which_o other_o man_n with_o painful_a travel_n gain_v and_o bring_v unto_o they_o and_o he_o be_v so_o stomach_a against_o they_o that_o he_o say_v quis_fw-la fer_fw-fr at_z homines_fw-la contumaces_fw-la ut_fw-la gemina_fw-la illeccbra_fw-la corrumpantur_fw-la &_o dissolutalicentia_fw-la vacationis_fw-la &_o falsonomine_fw-la sanctitatis_fw-la that_o be_v who_o can_v suffer_v contumacious_a man_n entangle_v with_o double_a corruption_n both_o with_o the_o dissolute_a liberty_n of_o vacance_n fronlabour_v &_o with_o the_o false_a conceit_n also_o of_o holiness_n from_o the_o six_o hundred_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n until_o our_o day_n monastries_n begin_v again_o to_o be_v in_o great_a account_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o world_n not_o for_o the_o exercise_n of_o read_v pray_v meditation_n laborious_a work_n in_o a_o lawful_a call_n and_o charity_n which_o be_v the_o ornament_n of_o the_o monk_n of_o old_a but_o for_o the_o splendour_n of_o costly_a building_n like_v unto_o the_o palace_n of_o prince_n magnificent_a church_n plurality_n of_o relic_n great_a revenue_n daily_o increase_v by_o the_o liberality_n of_o prince_n and_o this_o new_a beauty_n be_v like_a unto_o the_o fairding_n of_o a_o old_a woman_n when_o natural_a beauty_n be_v similitude●…_n spen●…_n then_o must_v she_o be_v deck_v with_o picture_a colour_n invent_v by_o the_o art_n of_o man_n and_o this_o kind_n of_o beauty_n ravish_v the_o sense_n of_o such_o as_o be_v simple_a and_o ignorant_a and_o it_o be_v a_o wonderful_a thing_n to_o consider_v how_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n be_v transport_v with_o this_o new_a show_n of_o holiness_n in_o so_o far_o that_o some_o king_n think_v it_o to_o be_v a_o holy_a thing_n to_o enter_v into_o a_o monastrie_n than_o to_o sit_v in_o their_o royal_a throne_n and_o to_o gonerne_n in_o justice_n and_o
papist_n will_v make_v it_o to_o s●…eme_v probable_a that_o the_o antichrist_n be_v one_o singular_a man_n only_o be_v take_v from_o the_o force_n of_o the_o prepositive_a article_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o childish_a argument_n indeed_o as_o who_o will_v say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o pray_v in_o any_o chamber_n except_o in_o one_o on●…lie_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o prepositive_a article_n set_v before_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o these_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v enter_v into_o thy_o 6_o chamber_n the_o time_n of_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o antichristes_n persecution_n three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a be_v borrow_v from_o augustine_n who_o suppose_v that_o the_o horn_n which_o shall_v speak_v word_n against_o 25_o the_o most_o high_a and_o who_o shall_v change_v time_n and_o law_n as_o thing_n give_v unto_o his_o hand_n untilla_fw-la time_n and_o time_n and_o the_o divide_n of_o a_o time_n by_o this_o horn_n i_o say_v augustine_n suppose_v the_o antichrist_n to_o be_v present_v how_o beit_v other_o more_o judicious_o have_v refer_v this_o pprophecy_n to_o antiochus_n epiphanes_n who_o blaspheme_v god_n change_a sabbo●…hs_n and_o festival_n day_n yea_o and_o by_o his_o impious_a law_n presume_v to_o abrogate_v the_o law_n of_o the_o almighty_a god_n and_o immediate_o after_o such_o presumptuous_a attempt_n ●…6_n god_n shorten_v his_o day_n for_o within_o the_o space_n of_o three_o year_n and_o some_o few_o day_n he_o end_v his_o life_n in_o most_o miserable_a manner_n they_o have_v no_o better_a ground_n to_o affirm_v that_o the_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o dan_n than_o this_o because_o the_o tribe_n of_o dan_n be_v not_o reckon_v among_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o tribe_n apocal._n 7._o yet_o this_o be_v not_o do_v to_o exclude_v this_o tribe_n from_o the_o save_a mark_n of_o christ_n but_o to_o give_v place_n to_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n and_o not_o to_o exceed_v the_o number_n of_o twelve_o tribe_n for_o holy_a scripture_n which_o commend_v the_o faith_n of_o barak_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o nephtali_n and_o gideon_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o manasse_n and_o iphtah_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o gad_n commend_v also_o the_o faith_n of_o samson_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o dan_n hebr._n cap._n 2._o vers_fw-la 11._o one_o thing_n i_o can_v pass_v by_o the_o inventor_n of_o such_o fable_n that_o the_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o dan_n bear_v in_o babylon_n etc._n etc._n in_o some_o thing_n have_v overseen_a themselves_o miserable_a namely_o when_o they_o affirm_v that_o the_o antichrist_n shall_v build_v the_o temple_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o shall_v sit_v there_o in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o jew_n shall_v adhere_v unto_o he_o and_o immediate_o after_o this_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v come_v and_o christ_n shall_v destroy_v the_o antichrist_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o mouth_n 32_o here_o mark_v the_o great_a contradiction_n that_o be_v betwixt_o the_o pprophecy_n of_o paul_n concern_v the_o conversion_n of_o the_o jew_n before_o the_o second_o come_v of_o christ_n and_o the_o foolish_a opinion_n of_o papist_n paul_n say_v that_o the_o jew_n shall_v be_v convert_v to_o the_o true_a faith_n before_o the_o great_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n second_o appearance_n but_o papist_n say_v that_o the_o jew_n shall_v be_v adhere_v to_o the_o antichrist_n when_o christ_n shall_v come_v to_o judge_v the_o world_n and_o to_o destroy_v the_o antichrist_n by_o the_o brightness_n of_o his_o come_n these_o two_o opinion_n can_v both_o consist_v therefore_o let_v the_o fable_n invent_v by_o man_n fall_v that_o place_n may_v be_v give_v to_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n who_o be_v bless_v for_o evermore_o amen_o a_o treatise_n of_o the_o antichrist_n controversy_n in_o civil_a matter_n be_v not_o all_o of_o like_a moment_n therefore_o it_o be_v ordain_v by_o the_o counsel_n of_o jethro_n that_o great_a matter_n shall_v be_v bring_v to_o moses_n and_o that_o inferior_a magistrate_n shall_v judge_v in_o small_a cause_n but_o in_o controversy_n 22_o of_o religion_n all_o cause_n both_o great_a and_o small_a be_v to_o be_v bring_v unto_o the_o mouth_n of_o christ_n our_o true_a moses_n who_o will_v speak_v from_o his_o sanctuary_n unto_o we_o and_o give_v unto_o we_o resolution_n of_o all_o our_o doubt_n out_o of_o his_o bless_a word_n in_o this_o treatise_n especial_o let_v we_o run_v to_o the_o month_n of_o christ_n speak_v by_o his_o apostle_n paul_n and_o utter_v a_o notable_a prephesie_n concern_v the_o come_n of_o the_o antichrist_n in_o the_o word_n follow_v let_v no_o man_n deceive_v you_o by_o any_o mean_n for_o that_o day_n shall_v not_o come_v except_o there_o come_v a_o depart_a first_o and_o that_o that_o man_n of_o sin_n be_v d●…sclosed_v 3._o even_o the_o son_n of_o perdition_n who_o be_v a_o adversary_n and_o exalt_v himself_o against_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n or_o that_o be_v worship_v so_o that_o he_o do_v sit_v as_o god_n in_o the_o temple_n of_o 4._o god_n show_v himself_o that_o he_o be_v god_n remember_v you_o not_o that_o when_o i_o be_v with_o you_o i_o tell_v you_o these_o thing_n 5._o and_o now_o you_o know_v what_o withholdeth_a that_o he_o may_v be_v reveal_v in_o his_o time_n 6._o for_o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n do_v already_o work_v only_o he_o who_o now_o withholdeth_a shall_v let_v tell_v he_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o way_n 7._o and_o then_o shall_v the_o wicked_a man_n be_v reveal_v who_o the_o lord_n shall_v consume_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o mouth_n and_o shall_v abolish_v with_o the_o brightness_n of_o his_o come_n 8._o even_o he_o who_o come_n be_v by_o the_o work_n of_o satan_n with_o all_o power_n 9_o and_o sign_n and_o lie_v wonder_n and_o in_o all_o deceiveablenesse_n of_o unrighteousness_n among_o they_o that_o perish_v 10._o because_o they_o receive_v not_o the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v and_o therefore_o god_n shall_v send_v to_o they_o strong_a delusion_n that_o they_o shall_v 11._o beleevely_n that_o all_o they_o may_v be_v damn_v who_o believe_v not_o the_o truth_n but_o have_v 12._o pleasure_n in_o unrighteousness_n the_o occasion_n move_v the_o apostle_n to_o embark_v into_o this_o pr●…pheticall_a prediction_n concern_v the_o come_n of_o the_o antichrist_n be_v this_o because_o some_o in_o thessalonica_n speak_v of_o the_o second_o come_v of_o christ_n that_o it_o be_v near_o approach_v and_o even_o at_o hand_n the_o apostle_n on_o the_o other_o part_n will_v assure_v the_o thessalonian_n that_o before_o the_o come_n of_o that_o great_a day_n there_o shall_v first_o be_v a_o defection_n from_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o that_o the_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v disclose_v it_o be_v not_o the_o purpose_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o dissuade_v any_o man_n from_o remember_v the_o terror_n of_o that_o great_a day_n wherein_o the_o very_a element_n shall_v melt_v and_o if_o so_o be_v what_o manner_n of_o man_n 12._o aught_v we_o to_o be_v in_o holy_a conversation_n look_v for_o and_o hasten_v unto_o the_o come_v of_o the_o day_n of_o our_o lord_n yea_o and_o the_o oblivion_n of_o the_o second_o come_v of_o christ_n be_v the_o principal_a ground_n of_o the_o security_n of_o the_o evil_a servant_n but_o the_o apostle_n lead_v by_o the_o conduct_n 24._o of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n foreseeing_a that_o two_o thing_n be_v needful_a to_o be_v remember_v to_o wit_n the_o second_o come_v of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o the_o precede_a come_v of_o the_o antichrist_n he_o will_v have_v they_o so_o to_o remember_v the_o one_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o forget_v the_o other_o lest_o while_o we_o run_v fast_o to_o the_o mark_n without_o mark_v the_o peril_n that_o be_v in_o the_o way_n we_o fall_v into_o the_o snare_n of_o the_o devil_n our_o master_n christ_n when_o he_o correct_v the_o foolish_a precipitation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o zebedeus_n who_o will_v 38_o have_v sit_v at_o the_o right_n and_o left_a hand_n of_o christ_n in_o his_o kingdom_n before_o they_o have_v be_v baptize_v with_o his_o baptism_n and_o before_o they_o have_v drunken_a of_o the_o cup_n of_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n he_o dissuade_v they_o not_o from_o continual_a fasten_v their_o eye_n upon_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n but_o rather_o so_o to_o look_v unto_o the_o mark_n that_o they_o over-leape_a not_o the_o way_n lead_v to_o the_o mark_n god_n have_v ind●…edep_v epare_v a_o kingdom_n for_o we_o but_o by_o 22_o many_o tribulation_n we_o must_v enter_v into_o that_o kingdom_n the_o apostasy_n whereof_o the_o apostle_n prophesi_v be_v not_o a_o desection_n in_o manner_n only_o but_o also_o a_o depart_n from_o the_o faith_n as_o